—
本帖被 舞矽 从 体育沙龙 移动到本区(2012-08-24)
—
[ 此帖被舞矽在2012-08-24 11:55重新编辑 ]
第六章 他们过了河,马车向山上驶去。在“十二橡树”村还没进入眼帘之前,思嘉就已经看见一团烟雾在那些高高的树顶上悠闲地飘浮着,也闻到了那股混合着燃烧的山胡桃木和烤猪肉羊肉的香味。 那些从头天晚上便在缓缓燃着的烤全牲的火坑,估计现在已成为玫瑰红灰烬的长槽,兽肉在上面的叉子上转动着,肉汁缓缓地滴落在炭火中,发出咝咝的声音。思嘉知道微风吹送的那股香味是从那幢大房子背后的大橡树林里起来的。约翰·威尔克斯常常是在那里,在那缓缓而下通向玫瑰园的斜坡上,举行他的全牲野宴。这个阴凉宜人的佳境要比别的例如卡尔弗特家使用的地方好得多。卡尔弗特太太不喜欢野宴上的食品,并且声称好几天之后房子里都还有那些气味,所以她的客人就常常被安排在一个离住宅四分之一英里的平坦而没有遮荫的地点热汗淋漓地吃着。不过,也只有这位以好客闻名全州的约翰·威尔克斯才真正懂得怎样举行野宴。 那些带有支架的长长的野餐桌上沿着威尔克斯家最漂亮的亚麻布,这些餐桌常常摆在最阴凉的地方,两旁是没有靠背的条凳;空地上还放着一些椅子、矮脚凳和坐椅,是给那些不喜欢坐条凳的人准备的。在离宴席较远的地方才是那些长长的烤野兽肉的火坑和炖肉汁的大铁锅,这里散发的油烟和种种浓烈的香味是客人们闻不到的。威尔克斯先生经常养着至少十来个黑人,他们端着托盘来回跑动为客人提供食品。 那边仓房背后还设有另一个野宴火炕,专供家仆、来宾们的车夫、侍女等人使用,他们吃是的玉米饼、山薯和黑人最喜欢的牲畜内脏,时令碰巧时还有足够的西瓜让他们吃个饱。 当思嘉远远闻到的新鲜猪肉的香味时,她欣赏地皱起鼻子,希望等烤好以后她的食欲会旺盛起来。此刻她的肚子里还是饱饱的,而且腰扎得很紧,生怕自己随时都会打出嗝来。 那就要命了,如果真是打嗝,因为只有老头儿和老太婆才不怕周围的人议论敢在宴度上打嗝呢。 他们驶上了山顶,这时那座白房子已整整齐齐的出现在她面前,你看那高高的圆柱,宽阔的游廊,平坦的屋顶,这美丽得像一个那么相信自己魅力的美人儿,她显得雍容大方,对谁都一样亲切可爱了。思嘉喜爱“十二橡树”村胜过喜欢塔拉农场,因为它的一种堂皇的美,一种柔和的庄严,而这是杰拉尔德的住宅所不具备的。 宽阔曲折的车道上到处是骑乘的马和马车,宾客们正纷纷下马下车,向朋友打招呼。咧着大嘴傻笑的黑人对宴会总是那么兴奋,他们正在把牲口牵到仓场上去卸鞍解辔,让它们好好休息一下。成群的孩子,有黑的,有白的,在新绿的草地上嚷着跑着,玩跳房子和捉人的游戏,并且竞相夸口要在野宴上吃多少多少东西。那间从前头一直延伸到屋后的宽敞的大厅里已经挤满了人,当奥哈拉的马车驶到前面台阶边停下时,思嘉看见那些像蝴蝶般漂亮的姑娘们摇摆着裙裾在二楼的楼梯上走上走下,有的彼此搂着腰肢倚在楼栏杆上,笑着招呼下面大厅里的年轻小伙子们。 从那敞开的法国式窗口,她看见那些年龄较大的妇女穿着深色绸衣摇着扇子端端正正坐在客厅里,谈论着婴儿、疾病和谁跟谁结婚,以及怎么结婚的,等等。威尔克斯的膳事总管汤姆在大厅和门厅里穿梭忙合着,他手里端着一只银托盘,不停地鞠躬微笑,向那些身穿淡米色或灰色裤子和皱边亚麻布衬衫的青年人奉上高脚酒杯。 阳光灿烂的前廊上也拥挤着宾客。是的,全县的人都在这里了,思嘉心想。塔尔顿家四个小伙子和他们的父亲倚着高高的圆柱,孪生兄弟斯图尔特和布伦特照例肩并肩站在那儿,博伊德和汤姆则同他们的父亲詹姆斯·塔尔顿在一起。卡尔弗特先生贴在近他的北方佬老婆,后者虽然已在佐治亚生活了15年之久,可仍然显得有点像陌生人似的。每个人对她十分客气而亲切,都觉得她可怜,不过谁也不会忘记她由于做了卡尔弗特先生的孩子们的家庭教师而加重了她在出身上犯下的过失。那两个卡尔弗家的小伙子雷福德和凯德,同他们那个活跃的白白胖胖的妹妹凯瑟琳在一起,向黑脸乔·方丹和他的漂亮未婚妻萨莉·芒罗开玩笑。亚可克斯和托尼·方丹在向迪米蒂·芒罗耳语,惹得她一次又一次格格大笑。有些家庭是远道而来的,例如从十英里外的洛夫乔伊,从费耶特维尔,从琼斯博罗,少数几家甚至来自亚特兰大和梅肯。整个房子像要被客人挤垮了,而不停地高谈阔论和哗然大笑,以及妇女们格格的笑声,尖叫声和喧嚷声,更是此起彼落,热闹无比。 思嘉看见约翰·威尔克斯站在走廊台阶上,他一头银丝般的头发,腰背挺直,焕发着宁静和蔼的容光,像佐治亚夏天的太阳一般永不衰败。他旁边站着霍妮·威尔克斯(人们之所以这样称呼她,是因为她对于从父亲到大田劳工所有的人都用同样亲切的口气说话),她正在不停地欢笑着迎接每一位来宾。 霍妮那种显然渴望对谁都显得亲切动人的劲儿,同她父亲的姿态形成了鲜明的对比,这使思嘉想起也许塔尔顿太太刚才说的话毕竟是有些道理。威尔克斯家的男人们无疑有自己的家族特征。那种把约翰·威尔克斯和艾希礼的灰眼睛衬托得更显著的赤金色浓睫毛,在霍妮和她妹妹英迪亚的脸上便变得稀疏而没有什么光泽了。霍妮像只野兔似的睫毛很少,而英迪亚除了用"平淡"一词以外,再没有别的说法可以形容了。 英迪亚的踪影哪里也找不到,但思嘉知道她也许是在厨房里对仆人们作最后的指示。思嘉心想,可怜的英迪亚,自从她母亲去世以后,她得为家务操不少的心呢,因此除了斯图尔特·塔尔顿,便没有机会去交别的男朋友了。而且,如果他觉得我比她长得漂亮,那也不是我的过错呀。 约翰·威尔克斯走下台阶,伸出手臂去搀扶思嘉。她下马车时见苏伦在得意地傻笑,便知道她已经从人丛中找出弗兰克·肯尼迪来了。 我就不信找不到一个比这穿裤子的老处女更好的男人! 她心里轻蔑地嘀咕着,一面跳下地来微笑着向约翰·威尔克斯表示感谢。 弗兰克·肯尼迪赶忙走来搀扶苏伦,苏伦那个得意劲儿更叫思嘉恨不得抽她一鞭子。弗兰克·肯尼迪可能拥有比县里任何人都多的土地,而且可能心地很好,可这些在一个年满40的人身上是毫无吸引力的,何况他既瘦小又神经质,长着几根稀稀拉拉几根黄胡子,是个婆婆妈妈、唯唯诺诺的人。 不过,思嘉记起了自己的计谋,便打消这种轻蔑心理,反向他飞了个欣然的微笑,这使他不由得一怔,一面向苏伦伸出手臂,一面高兴得不知所措地把两眼睛朝思嘉身上骨碌碌乱转。 思嘉即使在跟约翰·威尔克斯愉快地交谈时,两只眼睛也在人群里搜索艾希礼,可是他不在走廊上。周围是一起欢迎的招呼声,斯图尔特和布伦特·塔尔顿这对孪生兄弟一起向她走来。芒罗家的姑娘们也对她的衣服大声称赞,她很快便成了一个吵吵闹闹的圈子的中心,这些声音越来越高,把整个大厅里的喧哗都压倒了。可是艾希礼在哪里?还有媚兰和查尔斯呢?她装得若无其事地环顾四周,并一直朝大厅那里笑闹的人群中望着。她闲谈着,笑着,迅速向屋子里,庭院里搜索着,忽然发现一个陌生人独自站在大厅里用一种淡漠而不怎么礼貌的神情注视着她,这使她产生了一种复杂的感觉:一面由于自己吸引了一个男人而十分得意,一面又想到自己的衣服领口太低露出了胸脯而有点难为情了。他看来年纪不小,至少有35岁。他个子高高的,体格很强壮。思嘉心想,还没有见过这样腰圆膀阔、肌肉结实、几乎粗壮得有失体面的男人呢。当她的眼光和那人的眼光接解,他笑了,露出一口狰狞雪白的牙齿,在修剪短短的髭须底下闪闪发光。他的脸膛黑得像个海盗,一双又黑又狠的眼睛仿佛主张把一艘帆船凿沉或抢走一名处女似的。他的脸上表情冷漠而卤莽,连对她微笑时嘴角上也流露出嘲讽的意味,使思嘉紧张得出不来气。她想人家这样无礼地瞧着她简直是一种侮辱,可懊恼自己竟没有受辱的感觉。她不知道这究竟是个什么人,但他黑黑的脸膛无可否认地有着上等人家的血统。两片饱满的红嘴唇上那深长的鹰钩鼻子、高高的前额和宽阔的天庭,都说明了这一点。 她毫无笑容地努力把自己的眼光挪开,同时他也回过头去,因为有人在叫他:“瑞德,瑞德·巴特勒!到这里来!我要你见见佐治亚一个心肠最硬的姑娘。"瑞德·巴特勒?这名字有点耳熟,好像同某个不体面的趣闻有关似的,不过她正一心想着艾希礼,便不去细究了。 “我得上楼去理理头发,"她告诉斯图尔特和布伦特,他们正想把她从人群中带走。"你们俩可得等着我,别跟旁的女孩子跑掉,惹我生气埃"她看得出来,要是她今天跟任何别的人调情,斯图尔特是不会善罢干休的。因为他刚刚喝了几杯,正摆出一副找人打架的神气,她凭经验知道这就要出事了。她在过厅里站下跟朋友们说话,又对英迪亚打招呼,后者正从后屋里出来,已忙得头发不整,两鬓流汗。可怜的英迪亚!一个姑娘长着不灰不白的头发和眼睫毛,以及一个显得性情固执的下巴,这就够糟的了,何况已经20岁了还没嫁人呢!她不知英迪亚是否怀恨她把斯图尔特从她身边夺走了。有不少的人还在说她仍然爱他,可是你怎么也琢磨不透一个威尔克斯的家人是如何想的。即使她怀恨这件事,他决不会露出痕迹来,仍一如既往地用那种稍觉疏远又颇为亲切的态度对待思嘉。 思嘉愉快地跟她交谈了几句,便走上宽阔的楼梯。这时一个羞答答的声音在后面叫她的名字,她回过头来,看见了查尔斯·汉密尔顿。他是个俊俏的小伙子,满头柔软的褐色鬈发覆盖在白皙的前额上,眼睛也是深褐色的,明亮,温柔,像一只聪敏的长毛牧羊犬。他穿着很合身的裤子和黑色上衣,带皱褶的衬衫领口打着个很宽很时髦的黑领结。她转过身来时,他脸上泛起薄薄的红晕,因为他在女孩子面前总有点怯生生的。像大多数怕羞的男人那样,他非常爱慕思嘉这样快活,开朗而落落大方的姑娘。她以前对他的态度从没有超出敷衍应酬的范围,因此现在她回报他的那灿然一笑和愉快地伸出的两只手,就使他惊喜得透不过起来的。 “怎么,查尔斯·汉密尔顿,你这漂亮的小家伙,是你呀! 我敢说你是专门从亚特兰大老远赶来,这可叫我心疼得不行啊!"查尔斯激动的结结巴巴,几乎说不出话来了。他抓住她那双温暖的小手,痴痴地望着那双滴溜溜转的绿眼睛。姑娘们是惯用这种态度跟男孩子说话的,可对查尔斯却从来没有过。他可真不明白为什么她们老是把他当做小弟弟看待,又总是那么亲切,但从来不肯跟他开玩笑。他经常看见姑娘们跟那些比他难看得多和笨得多的男孩子在一起调情说笑,早就巴不得她们也这样跟他闹着玩儿。可是除了偶尔一两次外,他跟她们在一起时往往不知道说什么好,所以总是破口无言,窘困得难受极了。事情过后,他夜里躺在床上睡不着觉时,倒想起许许多多本来可以说的俏皮逗人的话来,可是机会没有了,因为人家姑娘们经过这么一两回试验之后,便把他撂在一边了。 至于霍妮,他同她已经有了默契,准备来年秋天他继承了遗产的时候结婚,可是他跟他在一起时同样也很不自在,没有什么好说的。有时候他有一种不怎么爽快的感觉,觉得霍妮那种有点卖弄风情和自作主张的神气对他很不利,因为她对男孩子有股狂热劲儿,恐怕一有机会她就会随便给哪个男人玩这一套的。所以查尔斯对娶霍妮不怎么热心,因为她没有在他心中那种疯狂的浪漫激情,而那是他心爱的书本告诉他一个恋人所应当有的。他经常渴望着有个美丽、大胆、感情炽热、善于戏谑的女人来爱他。 可如今思嘉·奥哈拉用她所说的对他心疼的话,在跟他开玩笑呢! 他想想出几句话来说说,可是想不出来,接着他便默默祝福思嘉,因为她在一个劲儿地说下去,他也就用不着开口了。这真是做梦也想不到的。 “现在,你就站在这儿,等我回来,到时我跟你一起吃野宴,可不要走开去跟别的女孩子胡闹呀,那样我可要吃醋了!"这些话从那张两旁各有一个酒窝的樱桃小口里说出,同时乌黑的睫毛在碧绿的眼睛上方假装严肃地飞舞着。 “我不会的,"他终于使劲喘过起来,可是决没有想到她是在把他当做一只等待屠夫的小牛犊呢。 她拿那把合着的折扇在他臂膀上轻轻一敲,然后转身上楼,这时她的视线又落到那个名叫瑞德·巴特勒的人身上,他正孤零零地站在离查尔斯几步远的地方。他显然从旁听见了刚才的全部谈话,因为他仰头对思嘉咧嘴笑了笑,那模样邪恶得像只公猫似的,随即又将思嘉浑身上下打量着,眼光中全然没有思嘉所习惯的那种敬意。 “活见鬼!"思嘉用杰拉尔德惯用的那句粗话烦恼地暗思忖说。"他看来好象----好像知道我没穿内衣是模样似的。"接着把头一甩,径自上楼去了。 在放包裹的那间卧室里,她发现凯瑟琳·卡尔弗特正站在镜前打扮,拼命咬着嘴唇,想叫它们显得更红一些。她的饰带上佩着新鲜的玫瑰花,这同她的两颊相到辉映,那双矢车菊般的蓝眼睛更是兴奋得神采飞扬了。 “凯瑟琳,"思嘉说,一面试着把她穿的那件紧身上衣拉高一点,"楼下那个姓巴特勒的讨厌家伙是谁?”“唔,亲爱的,你不知道吗?”凯瑟琳兴奋地低声说,留心不让在隔壁房间闲聊的迪尔茜和威尔克斯家姑娘们的嬷嬷听见。"我真想不到威尔克斯先生怎么会让他到这里来了,不过他本来就在琼斯博罗同肯尼迪先生商谈买棉花的事。当然了,肯尼迪先生要把他带在身边,就一起来了。他不能丢下他就走埃”“他究竟是怎么回事呢?”“人家谁也没有招待过他呢!亲爱的。”“真的没有吗?”“没有。"思嘉默默地寻思这件事,因为她还从不曾跟一个不受招待的人在一起待过呢。这倒是一种很令人兴奋的局面。 “他干过什么事了?” “唔,他的名声坏极了!思嘉,他叫瑞德·巴特勒,是查尔斯顿人,他的朋友本来都是那里最上等的人,可现在都不理他了。去年夏天卡罗·雷特跟我谈了他的情形。她跟他的家庭并没有亲属关系,可是她了解他的一切,而且谁都了解。 他是从西点军校开除出来的。你想想吧!他还些事情实在太糟糕了,卡罗也不便知道。此外就是关于他没有娶那个姑娘的事----”“快告诉我!”“亲爱的,你真的什么也不知道?卡罗去年夏天全都告诉我了,可要是她妈听说她居然知道这种事,恐怕会气得要死呢。唔,这位巴特勒先生带着一个查尔斯顿姑娘坐马车出去玩。我从来不知道她究竟是谁,不过我能猜到一点。她一定不是什么好东西,否则便不会在下午那么晚的时候没个伴就跟他出去了。而且亲爱的,他们在外面几乎待了个通宵,最后才步行回家,据说是马跑了,车也给摔坏了,他们在树林里迷了路。后来你猜怎么样----”“你说吧,我猜不着,"思嘉很热心地说,巴不得发生最糟糕的事。 “第二天他居然拒绝同她结婚!” “啊,"思嘉的希望破灭了。 “他说他没----嗯----没跟她有过什么,也看不出为什么就该娶她。于是,当然喽,她哥哥把他叫出来,这时巴特勒先生称他宁愿给熗毙也不要娶一个蠢货。这样一来,他们就只有进行决斗,结果巴特勒先生击中了那姑娘的哥哥,他死了,同时巴特勒先生也只好离开查尔斯顿,可至今没有接待他,"凯瑟琳得意地结束了她的故事,而且很及时,因为这时迪尔茜回到房间照料思嘉梳妆来了。 “她怀孕了没有?"思嘉在凯瑟琳的耳边悄悄地问。 凯瑟琳拼命摇头。"不过她同样给毁了,"她有点厌恶地低声回答。 但愿艾希礼别毁了我才好,思嘉突然这样想。象他这样一个十十足足的正人君子,是决不会不娶我的。可是,不知怎的,她情不自禁增对瑞德·巴特勒产生了一种敬意,因为他拒绝跟一个蠢女人结婚哩。 思嘉坐在屋后那株大橡树树荫下一张高高的木褥榻上,她衣裙上的荷叶边和皱襞向周围荡漾着,底下那双绿羊皮软鞋露出了大约两英寸的样子,这是大家闺秀坐着时双脚所能露出的最大部分。她手里捧着一个几乎没有动过的盘子。 野宴已达到高潮,暖融融的空气中洋溢 着笑声、谈话声、餐具碰着杯盘的叮当声,以及烤肉和稠肉汤的浓烈香味。间或一阵清风吹过,从长长的烤牲火坑向宾客们起来了股股轻烟,小姐太太们假装烦地尖叫起来,一面使劲挥舞手中棕榈叶扇子。 大多数年轻小姐同她们的男伴坐在餐桌两旁长长的条凳上,唯独思嘉,她明白在这种座席上只能两边各坐一个男人,便单单另外挑了个位置,这样她就可以引来尽可能多的男人聚在自己周围了。 已婚妇女,都坐在凉亭里,她们的深色衣裳在周围的欢快色彩中看来更加显眼。主妇们无论年龄大小,常常坐在一起,稍稍离开那些明眸皓齿的小姐、情郎和他们的喧笑声,因为在南方,妇女一结婚就不算美人了。从那位倚老卖老公然在打嗝儿的方丹老太太到初次怀孕正在极力忍住不呕吐出来的17岁的艾丽斯·芒罗,她们正交头接耳不停地讨论着家庭等方面的问题,这才使得这样的集会更加愉快而富于教育意义了。 思嘉朝她们轻蔑地看了一眼,觉得她们活象一群肥老鸦,已婚妇女从来都是没有什么趣味的。可她就不想想,要是她嫁给了艾希礼,也得自动地跟这些穿深色绸衣的主妇们一起,坐到凉亭下和前屋客厅里去,并且跟她们一样庄重,一样呆板,不再属于那有趣而快活的一群了。原来她像大多数女孩子那样,她的想象力只能把她带到结婚的礼坛上去,不近也不远,到此为止。此外,她现在正觉得十分不幸,没有心思去考虑这种抽象的事。 她垂下眼睛看看手里的盘子,灵巧地拿起一片薄薄的饼干送到嘴边模样是那么文雅,只轻轻咬了一点,要是嬷嬷见了准会大加赞赏的。她尽管周围有了那么多向她献殷勤的小伙子,可是从没像现在这样难受过。她自己也不明白是怎么回事,昨天昨上她想好的那些计划至少在艾希礼身上已经彻底完了。她吸引来几十个旁的男人,偏偏艾希礼没有来。因此昨天下午她所感到的那些恐惧现在又都卷土重来,笼罩在她身上了,使她的心脏时紧时慢地跳得很不正常,脸色也红一阵白一阵,难看得很。 艾希礼不想加入她周围的那个圈子,实际上她来到以后还没有单独跟他说过一句话,甚至自从见面时打了个招呼便再没有机会对他说话了。当她走进后花园时,他上前来欢迎过她,但当时媚兰正挽着他的胳膊----她几乎还没有他的肩膀高呢。 媚兰是个娇小脆弱的姑娘,从外表看就像个躲在母亲裙子里玩耍的孩子,加上她那双褐色大眼睛流露的怕羞到几乎惊恐的神色,就更加给人以这样的印象了。她长着一头稠密乌黑的鬈发,上面严严地罩着发网,显得一丝不乱。这黑的一大堆前面挂着个长长的寡妇嘴刘海儿,使得她的脸蛋完全变成了鸡心形。由于两个颧骨隔得太远,下巴太尖,那张脸虽然娇怯可人,但仍显平淡。她长得像----而且就是----泥土一样简单,面包一样可贵,春水一样清澈。不过,无论她的相貌多么平淡,身佬多么娇小,她的举止行动中仍包含着一种沉静而非常动人的庄重美,这使她看起来远不象一个17岁的大姑娘。 她穿一件灰色细棉布衣裳,上面配有樱桃色缎带,裙裾荡漾,皱襞粼粼,似在掩饰那个如孩子般尚未充分发育的身躯,而那顶垂着鲜红的细长饰带的黄帽子,则使她的奶油色皮肤更加光莹夺目了。她那对沉甸甸的耳坠子吊在长长的金链上,从整整齐齐网着的鬈发中垂下来,在褐色眼睛近旁摆荡着,这对眼睛象冬天树林中波光皎洁的湖水,两片褐色的叶子从宁静的湖水中闪映出来。 她用怯生生的喜悦心情微笑着欢迎思嘉,称赞她那件绿色衣裳多么漂亮,这时思嘉很不好意思,几乎装出一副礼貌的笑容来回答,因为她那么迫切地想同艾希礼单独谈话!从那以后,艾希礼就离开宾客坐在媚兰脚边一只小凳上,同她悄悄地谈着,悠闲而睡眼朦胧地微笑着,这样的微笑正是思嘉最心爱不过的。更糟糕的是在他的微笑下媚兰眼中焕发着一闪一闪的光辉,以致连想思嘉也不得不承认她几乎是美丽的了。媚兰望着艾希礼时,她那平淡的脸上仿佛被一支内心的火焰照耀得容光焕发,因为只要一颗热恋的心能够在脸上显现,那么现在媚兰脸上显现的正是这样的一颗心。 思嘉想把目光从这两个人身上挪开,不再看他们,可就是办不到,而且每看一眼就得从她周围的人们身上找到加倍的欢乐,跟他们一起笑着,谈着冒失的事情,挑逗他们,对他们的奉承话拼命摇头,摇得那双耳坠狂跳不止。她说了好几遍"胡说八道",声明真理不在他们任何一个人身上,并且发誓永远不相信他们任何人说的任何事情。可是艾希礼好像根本没有注意到她。他只一味地仰望着媚兰不停地说下去,同时媚兰俯视着他,她脸上的表情明明显示出她是属于他的。 这样,思嘉便觉得难堪极了。 在局外人看来,她是比谁也更没有理由觉得难堪的。她无疑是这次野宴上的美人,是大家注意的中心。她正在男人们中间激起的那阵狂热,加上其他姑娘们心中的妒火,在任何别的时候都会叫她心满意足了。 由于受到她的青睐查尔斯·汉密尔顿,仍牢牢地站在她右边,任凭塔尔顿家的孪生兄弟合力挤他也不挪动一步。他一只手拿着她的扉子,另一只手端着自己那盘连碰也没碰的烤肉,固执地不去跟霍妮的眼光接角,这叫霍妮伤心得快要哭了。她左边的凯德懒洋洋地待在那里,他不时拉拉她的衣角让她注意,同时用一双怒气冲冲的眼睛瞪着斯图尔特。他和这对孪生兄弟之间的敌对气氛已达到了一触即发的程度,并且已开始斗起嘴来。弗兰克·肯尼迪象只带小鸡的母鸡在瞎忙着,到橡树树荫下的餐桌旁来回奔跑,替思嘉挑拣好吃的东西,仿佛那儿的十几个仆人都不中用似的。最后,苏伦已实在按捺不住满腔愤,便冲出大家闺秀的忍让范围,公然向思嘉怒目而视。小卡琳也早就想哭的,因为尽管思嘉讲了不少鼓励的话,可布伦特只对她说了声"好啊,小妹",同时拨了拨她头上的发带便转身去全心全意奉承思嘉了。他往常总是那么亲切,用一种出于自然的敬重态度对待她,让她感到自己已经是个大人,便暗暗梦想有一天她将绾起发髻,放下裙裾,把他当作一个真正的情人来接待。可现在看来,思嘉已经把他捞到手了!至于芒罗家的几位姑娘,她们眼看方丹家那些黑皮肤小伙子已公然背叛他们,可是仍极力掩饰着心头的懊恼,不过当托尼和亚历克斯站在圈子外面等着觑着,随时准备只要有人站起来俩立即他占一个靠近思嘉的位置,那副讨厌相就叫她们忍无可忍了。 她们用扬起眉头的方式将自己对思嘉行为的反感微妙地传递给赫蒂·塔尔顿。对于思嘉来说,惟一的要诀是"快"。 这时,那三个年轻姑娘不约而同地举起花边阳伞,说她们已经吃够了,谢谢,一面用手指轻轻扶着身边男人的胳膊,娇声笑嚷着到玫瑰园、清泉和夏季别野参观去了。这种有秩序的战略性撤退对于一个在场的女人是不会不产生效果的,可男人就看不出来。 思嘉看见那三个男人被拉出了她的魅力圈,跟着女孩子们到她们从小便熟悉的名胜地观光去了,便格格地笑起来,同时狠狠盯住艾希礼,看他是否注意到这件事。可是他正在玩媚兰的那条缎带,一面微笑着望着她。思嘉感到揪心般一阵剧痛。她恨不得立刻跑过去将媚兰的乳白色皮肤狠狠地抓呀,挠呀,直到鲜红淋漓才痛快哩。 她的眼光从媚兰身上移开,便看见了瑞德·巴特勒,他已跟众人厮混在一起,可是仍站在一旁同约翰·威尔克斯交谈。他一直在观察她,但一旦接触到她的眼光便笑起来。思嘉感到很不自在,觉得这个不受招待的男人是在场惟一知道她那狂欢背后隐藏着什么心事的人,而且这只能给他以讥讽的乐趣。那么,她也可以抓他其他来取乐呀! “只要我能够熬过这个野宴,一直坚持到午后,"她想,"所有的女孩子便会上楼去午睡,准备精神饱满地参加晚上的舞会,那时我要留在楼下找机会跟艾希礼说话。他一定已经注意到我是多么受人爱慕了。"接着,她又自我宽慰地作出了另一种推测:“当然喽,他必须照顾媚兰,因为她毕竟是他的表妹,而且又一点不引人注目,如果他不那么关照她,她简直就要做无人问津的'墙花'了。"想到这里,她重新鼓起了勇起,并且对查尔斯加倍下功夫,这时他那双褐色眼睛正炽热地俯视着她。对于查尔斯来说,这真是绝妙的一天,美梦般的一天,他已经毫不费力同思嘉恋爱起来。由于这种新的感情的冲击,霍妮在他心中的形象便暗淡无光了。霍妮是一只尖叫的麻雀,而思嘉则是只闪烁的蜂鸟。她逗弄他,疼爱他,向他提问题,然后又自己回答,这样他毋需开口便显得非常聪明。别的小伙子显然被她对查尔斯的这种偏爱所激怒,而且给弄得糊里糊涂,因为他们知道查尔斯为人那么羞怯,一口气说不出两个字、一句的话来,可是出于礼貌,他们不得不强压着心头的怒火。谁都敢怒而不敢言,这对思嘉是个很大的胜利,可在艾希礼身上却是例外。 最后一叉子猪肉、鸡肉、羊肉都吃完了,思嘉希望时机已经来到,英迪亚会起身建议小姐们进屋去休息。这时是下午两点,太阳直照头顶,有点炎热,可是英迪亚由于准备野宴接连忙了三天,实在太劳累了,便乐得留下来坐在凉亭里歇一会,一面朝那位来自费耶特维尔的聋老头儿高声说话。 一阵懒洋洋的睡意向人群袭来。黑人们慢悠悠地收拾长桌上的残羹剩菜。谈笑声渐渐低沉,这里、那里三五成群的人也开始静默。大家都在等待女主人来宣布结束于前的野宴活动。棕榈扇子摇得愈来愈慢,有些先生由于炎热和吃得过饮,已经打起瞌睡来。大野宴已经结束,所以的人都要趁太阳正旺的时刻休息一下了。 在午宴和昨会之间这段空隙中,人们都显得安静而平和,只有年轻小伙子们仍保持着不甘寂寞的精力,正是这种精力使刚才整个娶会充满了生机。他们从一群人到另一群人不断走动,慢吞吞地低声谈论着,漂亮得像些纯种马驹,也同样地危险。中午懒洋洋的气氛笼罩了整个聚会,可是在它下面潜伏着一些暴躁因素,它们可能突然爆发,上升到凶残的顶点,并且迅速蔓延,成为燎原之势,男人和女人,他们既是美丽的,又是放荡的,那可爱的外表下面都有一点火爆性,其中已经驯服了的只是很小一部而已。 过了一会,太阳越发热了,思嘉和其他人又朝英迪亚看了看。谈话已渐渐沉寂,这时从林里所有的人都忽然听到了杰拉尔德的激昂的声调。原来他站在距离野宴席不远的地方,同约翰·威尔克斯争论是正起劲呢。 “真是活见鬼,你这人哪!祈求跟北方佬和平解决吗?咱们已经在萨姆特要塞向那些流氓开火了!还能和平?南方应当以武力表明它不能让人侮辱,并且它不是凭联邦的仁慈而是凭着自己的力量在脱离联邦!”“哦,他又喝够了!我的上帝!”思嘉心想。"这想,我们都得在这里坐到半夜去了。"顷刻之间,瞌睡从懒洋洋的人群中逃之夭夭,一种像电流般敏感的东西迅速掠过周围。男人从条凳和椅子上跳起来,挥动着两臂,拼命提高嗓门,同时一心想压倒别人的声音。本来整个上午都没有谈起政治和平在眉睫的战争,因为威尔克斯先生要求大家不要去打扰那些太太小姐。如今杰拉尔德吼出"萨姆特要塞"这几个字来了,在场的每一个便都忘记了主人的告诫。 “咱们当然要打----”“北方佬是贼----”“咱们一个月就能把他们报销----”“是啊,一个南方人能打掉20个北方佬----”“给他们一次教训,叫他们不要很快就忘了--- -”“不,你看林肯先生怎么侮辱咱们的委员吧!”“是啊,跟他们敷衍几个礼拜----还发誓一定得撤出萨姆特呢!”“他们要战争,咱们就让他们厌恶战急----"在所有这些声音之上,杰拉尔德的嗓门在隆隆震响,但思嘉能够听到的全是”州权、州权"的反复叫喊。杰拉尔德真是得意极了,可他的女儿并不得意。 脱离联邦,战争----这些字眼由于长期以来不断重复,思嘉已觉得十分刺耳,不过现在她更恨这些声音,因为它们意味着那些男人将站在那里激烈地争论好几个小时,而她就没有机会去单独见艾希礼了。当然,大家心里都清楚,实际上不会发生战争,他们只不过喜欢谈论,同时喜欢听自己谈论。 查尔斯·汉密尔顿没有跟着别人站起来,而且发现思嘉身边人已经很少了,他便挨得更近一些,沿着那股从新爱情中产生的勇气,低声表白起来。 “奥哈拉小姐----我----我----已经决定,如果战争打起来,我要到南卡罗来纳去加入那边的军队。据说韦德·汉普顿先生正在那里组织一支骑兵,我当然愿意去跟他在一起。他为人很好,还是我父亲最要好的朋友呢。"思嘉想,"这叫我怎么办呢----给他喝三声彩吗?”因为查尔斯的自白表明他是在向她袒露内心的秘密。她想不出说什么话来好,只好默默地看了看他,觉得男人真笨,他们还以为女人对这种事感兴趣呢!他把她的这种表情看做是又惊慌又嘉许之意,于是索性大胆而迅速地说下去----“要是我走了,你会----你会感到难过吗,奥哈拉小姐?”“我会每天晚上偷偷哭泣的,"思嘉这样说,听那口气显然是在开玩笑,可是他只从字面上理解,便一阵仍红乐得不行了。她的一只手本来藏在衣服的皱褶里,这时他故意把自己的的轻轻探进去碰它,后来索性紧紧握住了,连他自己都不明白哪来这么大的勇气,也不知道她怎的就默许了,因此感到愕然。 “你会为我祈祷吗?” “瞧你这个傻瓜!"思嘉刻薄地想道,一面偷偷向周围看了一眼,希望能找机会回避这种对话。 “你会吗?” “唔----会,真的,汉密尔顿先生。每晚祈祷三轮念珠,至少!"查尔斯迅速看了看周围,憋着肚子,屏住气。实际上他们是单独在一起了,真是千载难逢的机会。而且,即使再一次遇到这样的天赐良机,他的勇气也许要不济事呢! “奥哈拉小姐----我要告诉你一件事。我----我爱你!”“嗯?"思嘉心不在焉地说,一面将眼光穿过正辩论的人群朝艾希礼仍坐在媚兰脚边谈话的那个地方望去。 “真的!"查尔斯低声说,由于她既没有笑也没有惊叫或晕倒而高兴得不行了,因为按照他平时所想象的,年轻姑娘们在这种场合必然会那样的。"我爱你!你是世界上最----最- ---"这时他才有生以来头一次打到自己的舌头了,"我所认识的最美丽的姑娘和最可爱亲切的人,而且你有最高贵的风高,我以我的整个心灵爱着你。我不能指望你会爱一个象我这样的人,但是,我亲爱的奥哈拉小姐,只要你能给我一点点鼓励,我愿意做世界上任何的事情来使你爱我。我愿意----"查尔斯停住了,因为他想不出一桩足以向思嘉证实自己爱情深度的困难行动来,于是他只好简单地说:“我要跟你结婚。"思嘉听到"结婚"这个字眼,便猛地从幻想中回到现实里来。她刚才正在梦想结婚,梦想着艾希礼呢,如今只好用一种很难掩盖得住的懊恼神色望着查尔斯发怔了。怎么恰好在今天,她苦恼得几乎要发狂的时候,这个像牛犊似的傻瓜偏偏要来把自己的感情强加于人呢?思嘉注视着那双祈求的褐色的眼睛,可是看不出一个羞怯男孩的初恋的美,看不出那种对于一个已经实现的理想的的祟拜之情,或者像火焰般烧透他整个身心的那种狂喜和亲切的感觉。思嘉已经见惯了向她求婚的男子,一些比查尔斯·汉密尔顿诱人得多的男子,他们也比他灵巧得多,决不会在一次野晏上当她心中有更得要的事情在考虑时提出这种问题的。她只看到一个20岁的、红得像胡萝卜,有点傻里傻气的男孩子。她但愿自己能够告诉他,说他显得多么傻气。不过,母亲教导她在这种场合应当说的那些话自然而然溜到了嘴边,于是她出于长期养成的习惯,把眼睛默默地向下望,然后低声说:“汉密尔顿先生,我明白了你的好意,要我做你的妻子,这使我感到荣幸,不过这来得太突然了,我不知道说什么好呢。"这是一种干净利落手法,既可以安抚一个男人的虚荣心,又可以继续向他垂钓,所以查尔斯便高高兴兴地游上来了,他还经为这钓饵很新鲜,自己又是第一个来咬的呢。 “我会永远等待!除非你完全拿定了主意,我是不会强求的。请你说我可以抱这种希望吧!奥哈拉小姐。”“唔!"思嘉漫不经心地应着,那双尖利的眼睛继续盯住艾希礼,他仍在望着媚兰微笑。没有参加关于战争的议论。要是查尔斯这个在一味央求她的傻瓜能安静一会儿,说不定她能听清楚他们的话呢。她必须听清楚。究竟媚兰说了些什么,才使他眼睛里流露出那么趣味盎然的神色来呀? 查尔斯的话把她正在聚精会神地谛听着的声音搅和了。 “唔,别响!"她轻轻说,连看也不看他,在他手下拧了一下。 查尔斯吓了一跳,先是觉得惭愧,因思嘉的斥责而满脸通红,接着看到思嘉的眼睛紧盯在他妹妹身上,便微笑了。思嘉恐怕别有人会听见他的话。她自然觉得不好意思,有点害羞,更担心的是可能人在偷听。倒是查尔斯心中涌起了一种从未体验过的男性刚强感,因为这是他平生第一次让一个女孩感到难为情呢。他心头的震憾的令人陶醉的。他改变了自己的表情,显出一副自以为毫不介意的样子,同时故意在思嘉手上拧了一下作为回报,表示他是个堂堂的男子汉,懂得而且接受她的责备了。 她甚至没有发觉他在拧她,因为这时她能清楚地听见作为媚兰主要迷人之处的那个嫡滴滴的声音了:“我恐怕难以同意你对于萨克雷先生作品的意见。他是个愤世嫉俗的人。我想他不是狄更斯先生那样的绅士。"思嘉这样想,对一个男人说这种话有多傻呀!她心里顿感轻松,几乎要格格笑起来。原来,她不过是个女学生罢了,可谁都知道男人们是怎样看待女学究的……要使男人感兴趣并抓住他的兴趣,最好的办法是拿他做谈话的中心,然后渐渐把话题引到你身上来,并且保持下去。如果媚兰原来是这么说的:“你多么了不起呀"或者"你怎么会想起这样的事情来呢?可是我只要一想到它他就小脑袋瓜都要炸了!"那么思嘉就会有理由感到恐惧。但是她呢,面对脚边的一个男人,自己却像在教堂里似的一本正要地谈起来了。这时思嘉的前景已显得更加明朗,事实上已明朗得叫她回过头来,用纯粹出于喜悦的心情向查尔斯嫣然一笑,查尔斯以为这是她的爱情明证,便乐得忘乎所以地将她的扇子夺过来使劲挥打,以致把她的头发都扇得凌乱不堪了。 “你可没有发表意见支持我们呀,艾希礼。"吉姆·塔尔顿从那群叫嚷的男人中回过头来说。这时艾希礼只得表示歉意,并且站起身来。再也找不到像他这样漂亮的人了!----思嘉注意到他从容不迫的样子多么优雅,他那金色的头发和髭须阳光下多么辉丽,便在心中暗暗赞美。接着,甚至那些年长些的人也要安静下来听他的意见了。 “先生们,怎么,如果佐治亚要打,我就跟它一起去。不然的话,我为什么要进军营呢?"他说着,一双灰眼睛睁得大大的,平时含着几分朦胧欲睡的神色已经在思嘉从未见过的强烈表情中消失了。"但是,跟上帝一样,我希望北方佬将让我们获得和气,不至于发生战争----"这时从方丹家和塔尔顿家的小伙子们中爆发出一阵嘈杂的声音,他便微笑着举起手来继续说:“是的,是的,我知道我们是被欺骗了,受侮辱了,但是如果我们处在北方佬的地位,是他们要脱离联邦,那我们会怎么办呢?大概也是一样吧。我们也是不会答应的。”“他又来了,"思嘉想。”总是设身处地替人家的说话。"据她看来,任何一次辩论中都只能有一方是对的。有时候艾希礼简直就不可理解。 “世界上的苦难大多是由战争引起的。我们还是不要头脑太热,还是不要打起来的好。等到战争一结束,谁也不知道那究竟是怎么回事了。"思嘉听了嗤之以鼻。艾希礼幸而在勇气这一点上没有什么可指责的,否则便麻烦了。她这样想过,艾希礼周围已爆发出一起表示强烈抗议和愤慨的大声叫嚷了。 这时在凉亭里,那位来自耶特维尔的聋老头儿也在大声向英迪亚发问。 “这究竟是怎么回事呀?他们在说什么?”“战争!"英迪亚用手拢住他的耳背大声喊道。 “战争,是吗?”他边嚷边摸索身边的手杖,同时从椅子里挺身站起来,显示出已多年没有过的那股劲头。"我要告诉他们战争是什么样的,我打过呢。"原来麦克雷先生很少有机会那种为妇女们所不允许的方式来谈战争呢。 他急忙踉跄着走向人群,一路上挥着手杖叫嚷着;因为他听不见周围的声音,便很快无可争辩地把讲坛占领了。 “听我说。你们这班火爆性子的哥儿们,你们别想打仗吧。 我打过,也很清楚,我先是参加了塞米诺尔战争,后来又当大傻瓜参加墨西哥战争。你们全都不明白战争是怎么回事。你们以为那是骑着一匹漂亮的马驹子,让姑娘们向你抛掷鲜花,然后作为英雄凯旋回家吧。噢,不是这样。不,先生,那是挨饿,是因为睡在湿地下而出疹子,得肺炎。要不是疹子和肺炎,就是拉痢疾。是的,先生,这便是战争对待人类肠胃的办法----痢疾之类----"小姐太太们听得有点脸红了。麦克雷先生让人们记起一个更为粗野的时代,像方丹奶奶和她的令人难为情地大声打的嗝儿那样,而那个时代是人人都想忘掉了。 “快去把你爷爷拉过来,"这位老先生的一个闺女轻轻对站在旁边的小女孩说。接着她又向周围那些局促不安的夫妇们低声嘟囔:“我说呢,他就是一天比一天不行了。你们相信吗,今天早晨他还跟玛丽说----她才16岁呢----'来吧,姑娘。……'"这以后声音便成了耳语听不清了,这时那位小孙女正溜出去,想把麦克雷先生拉回到树荫下去坐下。 姑娘们兴奋地微笑着,男人们在热烈地争论,所有的人都在树下乱转,他们中间只有一个人显得很平静,那就是瑞德·巴特勒。思嘉的视线落到他身上,他靠着大树站在那儿,双手插在裤兜里。因为威尔克斯离开了他,他便独自站着,眼看大家谈得越来越热火,也不发一言。他那两片红红的嘴唇在修剪得很短的黑髭须底下往下弯着,一双黑溜溜的眼睛闪烁着取乐和轻蔑的光芒----这种轻蔑就像是在听小孩子争吵似的。多么令人不快的微笑呀,思嘉心想。他静静地听着,直到斯图尔特·塔尔顿抖着满头红发、瞪着一双火爆眼睛又一次重申:“怎么,我们只消一个月就能干掉他们!绅士们总是会战胜暴徒的。一个月----喏,一个战役----”“先生们,"瑞德·巴特勒用一种查尔斯顿人的死板而慢悠悠的声调说,仍然靠大树站在那儿,两手照旧插在裤兜里,"让我说一句好吗?”他的态度也像他的眼睛那样流露着轻蔑的神情,这种轻蔑带有过分客气的味道,这就使那些先生们自己的态度显得滑稽可笑了。 人群向他转过身来,并且给他以一个局外人总该受到的礼遇。 “你们有没有人想过,先生们,在梅森一狄克林线以南没有一家大炮工厂?有没有想过,在南方,铸铁厂那么少?或者木材厂、棉纺厂和制革厂?你们是否想过我们连一艘战舰也没有,而北方佬能够在一星期之内把我们的港口封锁起来,使我们无法把棉花远销到国外去?不过----当然啦----先生们是想到了这些情况的。”“怎么,他把这些小伙子们都看成傻瓜了!"思嘉大恶地想道,气得脸都红了。 显然,当时产生这种想法的人并不只她一个,因为有好几个男孩子已翘起下巴,显得很不服气。约翰·威尔克斯看似无意但却迅速地回到了发言人旁边的位置上,仿佛是想向所有在场的人着重指出这个人是他的座上客,并且提醒他们这里还有女宾呢。 “我们大多数南方人的麻烦是,我们既没有多到外面去走走,也没有从旅行中汲取足够的知识。好在,当然喽,诸位先生都是惯于旅游的。不过,你们看到了些什么呢?欧洲、纽约和费城,当然女士们还到过萨拉托加。"(他向凉亭里的那一群微微鞠躬)"你们看见旅馆、博物馆、舞会和赌常然后你们回来,相信世界上再没有像南部这样好地方了。"他露出一口白牙笑了笑,仿佛知道所有在场的人都明白他不再住在查尔斯顿的理由,但即使明白了他也毫不在乎。"我见过许多你们没有见过的东西。成千上万为了吃的和几个美元而乐意替北方佬打仗的外国移民、工人、铸铁厂、造船厂、铁矿和煤矿----一切我们所没有的东西。怎么,我们有的只是棉花、奴隶和傲慢。他们会在一个月内把我们干掉。"接着是一个紧张的片刻,全场沉默。瑞德·巴特勒从上衣口袋里掏出一块精美的亚麻布手绢,悠闲自在地掸了掸衣袖上的灰尘。这时人群中发出一阵不祥的低语声,同时从凉亭里传来了像刚刚被惊忧的一窝蜂发出的那种嗡嗡声。思嘉虽然感到那股愤怒的热血仍在自己脸上发胀,可是她心里却有某种无名的意识引起她思索,她觉得这个人所说的话毕竟是有道理,听起来就像是常识那样。不是吗,她还从来没见过一个工厂,也不曾认识一个见过工厂的人呢。然而,尽管这是事实,可他到底不是个宜于发表这种谈话的上等人,何况是在谁都高高兴兴的聚会上呢。 斯图尔特·塔尔顿蹙着眉头走上前来,后面紧跟着布伦特。当然,塔尔顿家这对孪生兄弟是颇有礼貌的,尽管自己实在被激怒了。他们也不想在一次大野宴上闹起来,女士们也全都一样,她们兴奋而愉快,因为很少看见这样争吵的场面。她们通常只能从一个三传手那里听到这种事呢。 “先生,"斯图尔特气冲冲地说,"你这是什么意思?"瑞德用客气而略带嘲笑的眼光瞧着他。 “我的意思是,"他答道,"像拿破仑----你大概听说过他的名字吧?----像拿破仑有一次说的,'上帝站在最强的军队一边!'"接着他向约翰·威尔克斯转过身去,用客气而真诚的态度说:“你答应过让我看看你的藏书室,先生。能不能允许我现在就去看看?我怕我必须在下午早一点的时候回琼斯博罗去,那边有点小事要办。"他又转过身来面对人群,喀嚓一声并扰脚跟,像个舞蹈师那样鞠了一躬,这一躬对于一个像他这样气宇轩昂的人来说显得很是得体,同时又相当卤莽,像迎面抽了一鞭子似的。 然后他同约翰·威尔克斯横过草地,那黑发蓬松的头昂然高举,一路上发出的令人不舒服的笑声随风飘回来,落到餐桌周围的人群里。 人群像吓了一跳似的沉默了好一会,然后才再一次爆发出嗡嗡的议论声。凉亭里的英迪亚从座位上疲惫地站起身来,向怒气冲冲的斯图尔特走去。思嘉听不见她说些什么,但是从她仰望斯图尔特面孔的眼神中流露出一种像是良心谴责的意味。媚兰正是用这种表示自己属于对方的眼光看艾希礼的,只不过斯图尔特没有发觉就是了。所以说,英迪亚真的在爱他呢。思嘉这时想起,如果在去年那次政治讲演会上她没有跟斯图尔特那么露骨地调情,说不定他早已同英迪亚结婚了呢。不过这点内疚很快就同另一种欣慰的想法一起逝去了----要是一个姑娘们保不住她们的男人,那也不能怪她呀! 斯图尔特终于低头向英迪亚笑了笑,但这不是情愿的,接着又点了点头。英迪亚刚才也许是在求他不要去跟巴特勒先生找麻烦吧。这时客人们站起来,一面抖落衣襟上的碎屑,树下又是一阵愉快的骚动。太太们在呼唤保姆和孩子,把他们召集在一起,准备告辞了,同时一群群的姑娘陆续离开,一路谈笑着进屋去,到楼上卧室里去闲聊,并趁机午睡一会儿。 除了塔尔顿夫人,所有的太太小姐都出了后院,把橡树树荫和凉亭让给了男人。塔尔顿夫人是被杰拉尔德、卡尔弗特先生和其他有关的人留下来过夜,要求她在卖给军营马匹的问题上给一个明确的回答。 艾希礼漫步向思嘉和查尔斯坐的地方走过来,脸上挂着一缕沉思而快乐的微笑。 “这家伙也太狂妄了,不是吗?”他望着巴特勒的背影说。 “他那神气活像个博尔乔家的人呢!” 思嘉连忙寻思,可是想不起这个县里,或者亚特兰大,或者萨凡纳有这样一个姓氏的家族。 “他是他们的本家吗?我不知道这家人呀。他们又是谁呢?"查尔斯脸上露出一种古怪的神色,一种怀疑与羞愧之心同爱情在激烈地斗争着。但是他一经明白,作为一位姑娘只要她可爱、温柔、美丽就够了,不需要有良好的教育本牵制她的迷人之处,这时爱情便在他内心的斗争中占了上风,于是他迅速答道:“博尔乔家是意大利人呢。”“啊,原来是外国人,"思嘉显得有点扫兴了。 她给了艾希礼一个最美的微笑,可不知为什么他这时没有注意她。他正看着查尔斯,脸上流露出理解和一丝怜悯的神情。 思嘉站在楼梯顶上,倚着栏杆留心看着下面的穿堂。穿堂里已经没有人了。楼上卧室里传来无休止的低声细语,时起时落,中间插入一阵阵尖利的笑声,以及"唔,你没有,真的!"和"那么他怎么说呢?"这样简短的语句。在门间大卧室里的床上和睡椅上,姑娘们正休息,她们把衣裳脱掉了,胸衣解开了,头发披散在背上。午睡本是南方的一种习惯,在那种从清早开始到晚上舞会结束的全天性集会中,尤其是必不可少的。开头半小时姑娘们总是闲谈说笑,然后仆人进来把百叶窗关上,于是在温暖的半明半暗中谈话渐渐变为低语,最后归于沉寂,只剩下柔和而有规律的呼吸声了。 思嘉确信媚兰已经跟霍妮和赫蒂·塔尔顿上床躺下了,这才溜进楼上的穿堂,动身下楼去。她从楼梯拐角处的一个窗口看见那群男人坐在凉亭里端着高脚杯喝酒,知道他们是要一直坐到下午很晚时才散的。她的目光在人群中搜索,可是艾希礼不在里面。于是她侧耳细听,听到了他的声音。原来正如她所希望的,他还在前面车前上给好些离去的太太和孩子送别呢。 她兴奋得心都跳到喉咙里来了,便飞速跑下楼去。可是,假如她碰上威尔克斯先生呢?她怎样解释为什么别的姑娘都美美地午睡了,她却还在屋子里到溜达呢?好吧,反正这个凤险是非冒一下不可了。 她跑到楼下时,听见仆人们由膳事总管指挥着在饭厅里干活,主要是把餐桌和椅子搬出来,这晚上的舞会作准备。大厅对面藏书室的门敞着,她连忙悄悄溜了进去。她可以在那里等着,直到艾希礼把客人送走后进屋来,她就叫住他。 藏书室里半明半暗,因为要挡阳光,把窗帘放下来了。那间四壁高耸的阴暗房子里塞满了黑糊糊的图书,使她感到压抑。要是让她选择一个像现在这样进行约会的地点,她是决不会选这房间的。书本多了只能给她一种压迫感,就像那些喜欢大量读书的人给她的感觉一样。那就是说----所有那样的人,只有艾希礼除外。在半明半暗中,那些笨重的家具兀立在那里,它们是专门给高大的威尔克斯家男人做的座位很深、扶手宽大的高背椅,给姑娘们用的前面配有天鹅绒膝垫的柔软天鹅绒矮椅。这个长房间尽头的火炉前面摆着一只七条腿的沙发,那是艾希礼最喜欢的座位,它像一头巨兽耸着隆起的脊背在那儿睡着了。 她把门掩上,只留下一道缝,然后极力镇定自己,让心跳渐渐缓和。她要把头天晚上计划好准备对艾希礼说的那些话从头温习一遍,可是一点也想不起来了。究竟是她设想过一些什么,可现在忘记了,还是她本来就只准备听艾希礼说话呢?她记不清楚,于是突然一个寒噤,浑身恐惧不安。只要她的心跳暂时停止,不再轰击她的耳朵,她也许还能想出要说的话来。可是她急促的心跳加快了,因为她已经听见他说完最后一声再见,走进前厅来了。 她惟一能想起来的是她爱他----爱他所有的一切,从高昂的金色头颅到那双细长的黑马靴;爱他的笑声,即使那笑声令人迷惑不解;爱他的沉思,尽管它难以捉摸。啊,只要他这时走进来把她一把抱在怀里,她就什么也不用说了。他一定是爱她的----"或许,我还是祷告----"她紧紧闭上眼睛,喃喃地念起"仁慈的圣母玛利亚----"来。 “思嘉!怎么,"艾希礼的声音突然冲破她耳朵的轰鸣,使她陷于狼狈不堪的地境地。他站在大厅里,从虚掩着的门口注视着她,脸上流露出一丝疑或的微笑。 “你这是在躲避谁呀----是查尔斯还是塔尔顿兄弟?"她哽塞着说不出声来。看来他已经注意到有那么多男人聚在她的周围了!他站在那儿,眼睛熠熠闪光,仿佛没有意识到她很激动,那神态是多么难以言喻地可爱呀!她不说话,只伸出一只手来拉他进屋去。他进去了,觉得又奇怪又有趣。 她浑身紧张,眼睛里闪烁着他从未见过的光辉,即使在阴暗中他也能看见她脸上泛着玫瑰似的红晕。他自动地把背后的门关上,然后把她的手拉过来。 “怎么回事呀?"他说,几乎是耳语。 一接触到他的手她便开始颤抖。事情就要像她所梦想的那样发生了。她脑海里有许许多多不连贯的思想掠过,可是她连一个也抓不住,所以也编不出一句话来。她只能浑身哆嗦,仰视着他的面孔。他怎么不说话呀? “这是怎么回事?"他重复说,"是要告诉我一个秘密?"她突然能开口了,这几年母亲对她的教诲也同样突然地随之消失,而父亲爱尔兰血统的直率则从她嘴里说出来。 “是的----一个秘密。我爱你。” 霎时间,一阵沉重的沉默,仿佛他们谁也不再呼吸了。然后,她的颤栗渐渐消失,快乐和骄傲之情从她胸中涌起。她为什么不早就这样办呢。这比人们所教育她的全部闺门诀窍要简单多了!于是她的眼光径直向他搜索了。 他的目光里流露出狼狈的神色,那是怀疑和别的什么----别的什么?对了,杰拉尔德在他那匹珍爱的猎马摔断了腿,也不得不用熗把那骑马杀死的那一天,是有过这种表情的。可是,真是傻透了。她为什么现在要去想那件事呀?那么,艾希礼又究竟为什么显得这么古怪,一言不发呢?这时,他脸上仿佛罩上了一个很好的面具,他殷勤地笑了。 “难道你今天赢得了这里所有别的男人的心,还嫌不够吗?”他用往常那种戏谑而亲切的口气说。"你想来个全体一致?那好,你早已赢得了我的好感,这你知道。你从小就那样嘛。"看来有点不对头----完全对不对头了!这不是她所设想的那个局面。她头脑里各种想法转来转去,疯狂奔突,其中有一个终于开始成形了。不知怎的----出于某种原因----艾希礼看来似乎认为她不过在跟他调情而已。可是他知道并非如此。她想他一定是知道的。 “艾希礼----艾希礼----告诉我----你必须----啊,别开玩笑嘛!我赢得你了的心了吗?啊,亲爱的,我爱----"他连忙用手掩住她的嘴。假面具消失了。 “你不能这样说,思嘉!你决不能。你不是这个意思。你会恨你自己说了这些话的,你也会恨我听了这些话的!"她把头扭开。一股滚热的激流流遍她的全身。 “我告诉你我是爱你的,我永远不会恨你。我也知道你一定对我有意,因为----"她停了停。她从来没有见过谁脸上有这么痛苦呢。"艾希礼,你是不是有意----你有的,难道不是吗?”“是的,"他阴郁地说。"我有意。"她吃惊了,即使他说的是讨厌,她也不至于这样吃惊埃她拉住他的衣袖,哑口无言。 “思嘉,"最后还是他说,"我们不能彼此走开,从此忘记我们曾说过这些话吗?” “不,"她低声说。"我不能。你这是什么意思?难道你不要----不要跟我结婚吗?”他答道,"我快要跟媚兰结婚了。"不知怎的,她发现自己坐在一把天鹅绒矮椅上,而艾希礼坐在她脚边的膝垫上,把她的两只手拿在自己手里紧紧握着。他正在说话----说些毫无意义的话。她心里完全是一片空白,刚才还势如潮涌的那些思想此刻已无影无踪了,同时他所说的话也像玻璃上的雨水没有留下什么印象。那些急切、温柔而饱含怜悯的话,那些像父亲在对一个受伤的孩子说的话,都落在听不见的耳朵上了。 只有媚兰这个名字的声音使她恢复了意识,于是她注视着他那双水晶般的灰眼睛。她从中看到了那种常常使她迷惑不解的显得遥远的感觉----以及几分自恨的神情。 “我们很快就要结婚。父亲今晚要宣布我们的婚事。我本来应当早告诉你,可是我还以为你知道了----几年前就知道了呢。我可从没想到你----因为你的男朋友多着呢。我还以为斯图尔特----"生命和感觉以及理解力又开始涌回到她的身上。 “可是你刚才还说对我有意呢。” 他那温暖的双手把她的手握痛了。 “亲爱的,难道你一定要我说出那些叫你难过的话来吗?”她不作声,这逼得他继续说下去。 “亲爱的,我怎么才能让你明白这些事呢?你还这样年轻,又不怎么爱想问题,所以还不懂得结婚是什么意思呢。”“我知道我爱你。”“要结成一对美满夫妻,像我们这样不同的两个人,只有爱情是不够的。你需要的是一个男人的全部,包括他的躯体,他的感情,他的灵魂,他的思想。如果你没有得到这些,你是会痛苦的。可是我不能把整个的我给你,也不能把整个的我给予任何人。我也不会要你的整个思想和灵魂。因此你就会难过。然后就会恨我----会恨透了的!你会恨我所读的书和所喜爱的音乐,因为它们把我从你那儿抢走了,即使只抢走那么一会也罢。所以我----也许我----”“你爱她吗?”“她是像我的,是我的血脉的一个部分,而且我们互相了解,思嘉!思嘉!难道我就不能使你明白,除非两个人彼此相爱,否则结了婚也无法稳稳过下去的。"别的什么人也说过:“结婚只能是同类配同类,不然就不会有幸福。"这话是谁说的呢?仿佛她听过已经上百万年了,可是它仍然显得毫无意义。 “但是你说过你有意呢。” “我本不该说了。” 这时她脑子里什么地方有一把缓缓燃着的火升起来了,愤怒开始要扫除其余的一切。 “好吧,这样说反正是够混蛋的----” 他的脸发白了。 “因为我就要跟媚兰结婚了。我这样说是混蛋的,我本来就不该说的,既然我知道你不会理解。我怎能不关心你呢?----你对生活倾注着全部热情,而这种热情我却没有。你能够狠狠地爱和狠狠地恨,而我却不能这样。你就像火和风以及其他原始的东西那样单纯,而我 ----"思嘉想起了媚兰,突然看到她那双宁静的仿佛正在出神的褐色的眼睛,她那双戴着的黑色花边长手套的温和的小手和那种高雅文静的神态。于是她的怒火爆发了,这就是激起杰拉尔德去杀人和其他爱尔兰先辈去冒生命危险的那种怒火。此刻她身上已没有一点点母系罗比拉德家族富有教养和能够默默忍受世界上任何折磨的品性了。 “你这个懦夫!你为什么不说出来,你是害怕跟我结婚喽! 你是宁愿同那个愚蠢的小傻瓜过日子,她开口闭口‘是的’、‘是的’,还会养出一群像她那样百依百顺的小崽子来呢!为什么----”“你不能把媚兰说成这样!”“什么'你不能',去你的吧!你算老几,要来教训我不能这样不能那样?你是个胆小鬼,你混蛋。你让我相信你准备娶我----”“你要公道些,"他用恳求的口气说。"我何尝-—"她可不要什么公道,尽管知道他的话是一点不错的。他从来没有跨越过跟她的友谊关系的界限,可是她想到这一点,怒火就更旺了,因为这有伤她的自尊心和女性的虚荣。她一直在追求他,可他一点也不动心。他宁愿要媚兰这样脸色苍白小的傻瓜也不要她。啊,她要是遵照母亲和嬷嬷的教训,连一丝喜欢的意思也从不向他透露,那会好得多呢----比面对这种羞死人的场面更不知要好到哪里去了! 两只手紧紧握拳,她一跃而起,同时他也起身俯视着她,脸上充满着无言的痛苦,就像一个人在被迫面对现实而现实又十分惨痛似的。 “我要恨你一辈子,你这混蛋----你这下流----下流—-"她要用一个最恶毒的字眼,可是怎么也想不出来。 “思嘉----请你----” 他向她伸出手来,可这时她使出全身力气狠狠地打了他一个耳光,那噼啪的响声在这静静的房间里就像抽了一鞭子似的。紧接着她的怒气突然消失,心中只剩下一阵凄凉。 她那红红的手掌印明显地留在他白皙的而疲倦的脸上。 他一句话也没说,只拿起她那只柔软的手放到自己的唇边吻了吻。接着,他没等她说出话来便走了出去,随手把门轻轻关上。 她很突然地又在椅子上坐下,因为怒气一过,两个膝头便酸软无力了。他走了,可是他那张被抽打的脸孔的印象将终生留在她的记忆中。 她的见他徐缓而低沉的脚步声在大厅尽头渐渐消失,这才觉得她这番举动的严重后果已全部由她来承担了。她已永远失去了他。从此还会恨她,每次看见她都会记起她曾在根本没得到他鼓励的情况下就要将自己的委身于他了。 “我像霍妮·威尔克斯一样下贱了,"她突然这样想,并记起每个人,首先是她自己,曾怎样轻蔑地嘲笑霍妮的卤莽行为。她仿佛看见霍妮吊在男人膀子上那种讨厌的扭捏作态,听见她那愚蠢的嗤笑声,这越发刺痛了她,于是又大为生气,生自己的气,生艾希礼的气,生人世间的气。因为她恨自己,恨这一切,这是出于一种因为自己16岁的爱情遭到挫折和屈辱而产生的怨愤。她的爱中只混进了一点点真正的柔情,大部分是虚荣心混杂着对自己魅力的迷信。现在她失败了,而比失败感更沉重的是她的恐惧,惧怕自己已沦为公众的笑柄。她已经像霍妮那样惹人注目了吗?会不会人人都耻笑她?想到这里她就浑身战栗起来。 她的手落在身旁一张小桌上,手指无意中触摸到一只小巧的玫瑰瓷碗,碗上那两个有翼的瓷天使在嘻着嘴傻笑。房间里静极了,为了打破这沉寂,她几乎想大叫一声。她必须做点什么,否则会发疯的。她拿起那只瓷碗,狠狠地向对面的壁炉掷去,可它只掠过了那张沙发的高靠背,砸到大理石炉台上,哗啦一声就摔碎了。 “这就太过分了。"沙发深处传来声音说。 她从来没有这样惊恐过,可她已经口干得发不出声来了。 她紧紧抓住椅背,觉得两腿发软,像站不稳了似的,这时瑞德·巴特勒从他一直躺着的那张沙发里站起来,用客气得过分的态度向她鞠了一躬。 “睡个午觉也要被打扰不休,被迫恭听那么一大段戏文,这已经够倒霉了,可为什么还要危及人家的生命呢?"他不是鬼。他是个实实在在的人,可是,神灵在保佑我们,他一切都听见了!她只得尽全力,装出一副端庄的模样。 “先生,你待在这里,应当让人家知道才好。”“是吗?”他露出一口雪白的牙齿,一对勇敢的黑眼睛在嘲笑她。"你才是个不请自来闯入者呢。我是被迫在这里等候肯尼迪先生,因为觉得也许我在后院是个不受欢迎的人,几经考虑才识相地来到这里。我想这下大概可以不受干扰了吧。可是,真不幸!"他耸耸肩膀,温和地笑起来。 一想起这个粗鲁无礼的人已经听见一切,听见了那些她现在宁死也不愿意说出的话,她的脾气又开始发作了。 “窃听鬼!"她愤愤地说。 “窃听者常常听的是一些很动听有益的东西,"他故意傻笑着说。"从长期窃听的经验中,我----”“先生,你不是上等人!”“你的眼力很不错,"他轻松地说,”可你,小姐,也不是上等女人哟!"他似乎觉得她很有趣,因为他又温和地笑了。 “无论谁,只要她说了和做了我刚才听到的那些事情,她就不能再算个上等女人了。不过,上等女人对于我来说也很少有什么魅力。我明知她们在想什么,可是她们从来就没有勇气或者说缺乏教养来说出她们所想的东西。这种态度到时候就要使人厌烦了。可是你,你是个精神很不平凡,很值得钦佩的姑娘,亲爱的奥哈拉小姐,因此我要向你脱帽致敬。我不明白,那位文绉绉的威尔克斯先生有什么美妙之处,能叫你这样一位性格如急风暴雨的姑娘着迷呢?他应当跪下来感谢上帝给了他一个有你这种----他是怎么说的?----对'生活倾注着全部热情'的姑娘,谁知他竟个畏畏缩缩的可怜虫—-”“你还不配给他擦靴子呢!"她气愤地厉声说。 “可你是准备恨他一辈子啦!"说罢他又在沙发上坐下了,思嘉听见他还在笑。 假如她能够把他杀了,她是做得出来的。但事情没有那样发生,她尽力装出庄重的样子走出藏书室,砰的一声把沉重的门关上。 她一口气跑上楼去,到达楼梯顶时她觉得简直要晕倒了。 她停下来,抓住栏杆,由于愤怒、羞辱和紧张,那颗急速蹦跳的心似乎要从胸口里跳出来了。她想深深吸几口气,可是嬷嬷把腰身扎得实在太紧了。要是她果真晕过去,人们便会在这楼梯顶上发现她,那他们会怎样想呢?哦,他们是什么都想得出来的,像艾希礼和那个可恶的巴特勒,以及所有那些专门妒忌别人的下流女孩子!有生以来第一次,她后悔自己没有像别的女孩子那样随身带着嗅盐,她甚至连嗅盐瓶也从来没有过呢。她一贯以从不头晕而骄傲。可此刻她千万不能让自己晕倒。 渐渐地,那种难受的感觉开始消失了。不久她觉得已完全正常,便悄悄溜进英迪亚房间隔壁的小梳妆室,松开胸衣,爬到别的正在睡觉的姑娘旁边的一张床上躺下了。她设法让自己的心跳缓和下来,并力图使脸然平静,显得泰然自若,因为她知道她此刻的模样必然像个疯女人一样了。要是有个女孩子正醒着呢,她就会发现周围有点不对劲。可是千万千万不能让任何人知道出过什么事了。 从楼梯顶上的那个凸窗里,她能看见男人们还在树下和凉亭的椅子上斜躺着歇息。她真羡慕他们极了!作为一个男人,永远也不用经受她刚才把经历的那种痛苦,该多快活呀! 她站在那里看着他们,觉得有点眼酸头晕,这时忽然听见屋前车道上急速而沉重的马蹄声,石子飞溅声和一个大声询问黑人的激动的嗓音。石子又嘁嚓地飞溅起来,很快她就看见一个男子骑马驰过绿油油的草地,向那群在树下消闲的人飞奔而来。 大概是一位迟到的客人,可为什么竟沿着马穿过英迪亚最心爱的草地呢?她认不出他,但是当他从鞍下翻身下马,一手抓住约翰·威尔克斯的胳膊时,她看到了他浑身激动的模样。人群立即把他包围起来,把那些高脚玻璃杯和棕榈叶扇子丢在桌上和地上不管了。虽然距离较远,她还是听见人们询问和喊叫的嘈杂声,也感觉到他们沸腾到了顶点的紧张气氛。接着,在所有这些声音之上传来斯图亚特·塔尔顿的一声兴奋的喊叫:“咳—-呀----咳!" 仿佛他是在猎场上奔跑似的。同时她头一次听到了反叛的吼叫,尽管她并不懂得它的意义。 她正在看时,塔尔顿四兄弟由方丹家的小伙子们跟着从人群中挤出来,匆匆向马棚跑去,一路高喊:“吉姆斯,来,吉姆斯,赶快备马!”“一定是谁家着火了,"思嘉心想。但是不管有没有着火,她的头一桩事情是在自己被发现之前赶快回到卧室里去。 现在她心情平静些了,她踮着脚尖上楼梯,走进安静的厅堂。整个房子笼罩在一起浓重而温暖的朦胧状态中,仿佛它像姑娘们那样自由自在的睡着了,一直要睡到晚上,然后在音乐和烛光中焕然一新地显出自己优美的全貌。她小心翼翼地推开梳妆室的门,随即溜了进去。她的一只手还放在背后握着门把,这时霍妮低柔得像耳语的声音从通向卧室的对面门缝里传过来了。 “我看思嘉今天的行动那么迅速,怕是使出一个女孩子最大的劲儿来了!"思嘉觉得她的心又开始奔突起来,不由得用一只手紧紧抓住胸口,像要把它压服似的。"窃听的人常常听到一些很有益的东西。"她忽然想起这句带嘲讽的话。她要不要重新溜出来呢?或者索性闯进去,让霍妮活该下不了台?但接着传来第二个声音,这使她呆住不动了。这时即使有队骡子也休想把她拉动,因为她听见了媚兰的声音。 “啊,别太刻薄了,霍妮,别这样!她只不过兴致很高,很活泼。我认为她是十分可爱的。”“啊,"思嘉想,几乎把手指甲穿透了胸衣。"还用得着这油嘴滑舌的小妖精来袒护我!"媚兰这话比霍妮那种痛痛快快的挖苦还要难听。思嘉除了母亲以外,从来不相信任何女人,也不相信任何女人有什么动机不是自私自利的。媚兰以为她对艾希礼已经十拿九稳了,所以才乐得炫耀一下这种基督精神。思嘉觉得这正是媚兰在夸耀自己的胜利,同时想取得为人可爱的美名。思嘉自己在同男人们议论别的女孩子时也常常玩这种把戏,并且每次都叫那些蠢男人相信了她多么可爱和多么宽宏大量呢。 “唔,小姐,"霍妮尖酸地说,同时提高声音,"你准是瞎了眼啦!”“霍妮,小声点,” 萨莉。芒罗的声音插进来,"满屋子的人都要听见你的话了。"霍妮放低声音但继续说下去。 “喏,你们都看见的,她跟每一个能抓到的人都搞得很欢,甚至那位肯尼迪先生----他还是她妹妹的男朋友呢。我可从没见过这号人哪!而且她一定是在追求查尔斯。"霍妮有点难为情地格格笑起来。"可你们知道,查尔斯和我----”“你这是当真吗?”几个声音兴奋地低声说。 “唔,别跟任何人说,姑娘们----还没有呢!"接着又是格格的笑声和弹簧床架嘎嘎的响声,因为有人在挤着霍妮了。媚兰嘟囔了几句什么,大致是说她多么高兴霍妮将成为她的嫂子。 “她是我见过的第一号浪荡货,嗯,我可不高兴让思嘉当我的嫂子,"这是赫蒂·塔尔顿着恼的声音。"但是她跟斯图尔特已经等于订婚了。布伦特说她对他一点也不在乎。当然,布伦特也是很喜欢她的。”“要是你问我,"霍妮用故作神秘的口气说,"我说只有一个人是她中意的。那是就艾希礼!"低声细语混作一团,有的在提问,有的在打岔;思嘉听着又害怕又羞愧,心都凉了。霍妮对男人是个傻瓜,一个可笑的笨蛋,可是她对别的女人有一种女性的直觉,而思嘉低估了这一点。思嘉在藏书室先后跟艾希礼和巴特勒一起时受到的那种痛苦和侮辱,跟这里的情况比起来只不过是小小的针刺罢了。男人毕竟是让你信得过,能给你保密的,即使像巴特勒那样的人也不例外。可是有了霍妮这张像野外猎犬般的快嘴,等不到六点钟事情便会传遍整个县里了。昨天晚上她父亲杰拉尔德还说过,他不愿意让人家笑话他的女儿呢。可现在他们全都要笑话她了!想到这里,她的腋窝下冒出冷汗,滴滴答答往两肋直流。 这时传来媚兰的声音,盖过了所有其他人的议论声,她的声音显得平和有分寸,略带责备的口气。 “霍妮,你知道事情并不是那样。这样说多不厚道呀!”“就是那样嘛,媚兰,只要你不总是把那些实在没有什么好的人当好人看,你就会明白了。至于我,我还巴不得就是那样呢。那会够她受的。思嘉·奥哈拉平时的一举一动都一直是在制造麻烦和争夺别人的情人。你很清楚她从英迪亚身边抢走了斯图亚特,可她自己并不要他。今天她又想抢肯尼迪和艾希礼,还有查尔斯----”“我一定得马上回家去!"思嘉想。"我得马上回家去!"她恨不得用一种魔法把自己立即送回塔拉,送到那个安全的地方。她恨不得跟母亲在一起,就那么瞧着她,拉着她的衣襟,倒在她怀里哭诉今天的全部经历,要是她不得不继续听下去,她就会冲到里面,将霍妮那一头蓬乱的浅色头发大把大把地扯下来,然后向媚兰啐几口唾沫,叫她知道她是怎样看待她那种假仁假义的。可是她今天已经干得够那个的了。已经跟那些下流白人差不离了----这就是她的麻烦所在埃她双手使劲压住裙子,不让它发出啊啊的声音,同时象一只动物似的偷偷摸摸向后退了出来。"回家吧,"她一路念叨着,迅速跑过厅堂,经过那些关着门和静悄悄的房间,"我必须回家去。”她已经跑到了前面的回廊里,一个新的念头使她突然停下来----她不能回家!她不能逃走!她有必要在这里坚持到底,忍受姑娘们所有的恶言恶语和她自己的羞愧与悲伤。逃走,只会给她们提供更多的口实用来攻击她。 她握着拳头捶打身边那根高高的白柱子,恨不得自己就是参孙,那样她便可以把“十二橡树”村摧垮,并毁灭其中的每一个人。她要叫他们后悔。她要做给她们看看。她并不明白究竟怎样做给他们看,不过她反正是要做的。她要伤害他们,比他们伤害她还厉害。 此刻,艾希礼作为艾希礼仆人已经被她遗忘了。他已不再是她所钟爱的那个高高的睡眼朦胧的小伙子,而仅仅是威尔克斯家、“十二橡树”村和县里的一部分或比爱情更有力量,她愤怒的心中除了恨已经什么也容纳不下了。 “我不回去,"她想。"我要叫他们难堪。我要留在这里,我永远不告诉妈。不,我永远不告诉任何人。"她鼓起勇气回到屋里,爬上楼梯,走进另一间卧室。 她转过身,看见查尔斯正从穿堂的那一头走进屋来。他一起见她就忽忙走过来。他的头发已经凌乱不堪,那张脸也激动得象朵天竺葵。 “你知道发生了什么事吗?”他来不及到她跟前便大声嚷道:“你听说了没有?保罗·威逊刚刚从琼斯博罗赶来报信了!"他停了停,气喘吁吁地走近她。她只呆呆地凝视着他,一句话也没说。 “林肯先生已经招募,招募士兵----我的意思是志愿兵,听说有七万五千人了。”又是林肯先生!男人们究竟想过什么真正重要的事情没有?这不又来了一个傻瓜想叫她也对林肯先生的胡闹发火吗? 可她正在为自己伤心,她的名誉也等于扫地了呢! 查尔凝视着她。她的脸色惨淡得象张白纸,她那双略嫌狭窄的眼睛象绿宝石一样闪亮。他从没见过哪位姑娘脸上有这样的怒火,哪双眼睛有这样的光焰。 “我这人真笨,"他说。"我应当慢慢对你说才对。我忘记了姑娘们是多么骄嫩。很遗憾把人吓成了这个模样。你不觉得要晕倒吧,会吗,要不要我给你倒杯水来?”“不,"她说,设法挤出一丝微笑来。 “我们到那边条凳上去坐坐好吗?”他挽住她的胳膊问。 她点点头,于是他小心地搀着她走下屋前的台阶,领她穿过草地到前院最大的一株橡树底下的铁条凳去。他心里想,女人是多么脆弱而娇嫩啊,你一提起战争和凶险的事她们就要晕倒了。这个想法使他觉得自己很有丈夫气概,当他扶着她坐下时又显得加倍地温柔。她此刻的表情那么奇怪,惨白的脸上有的是一种野性的美,这叫他心神不安起来。难道是她想到他可能要去打仗而发愁了?不,这未免有点太自负了,不可信,那她为什么这样古怪地瞧着他呢?为什么她的手指拨弄花边手绢时会颤抖呢?而且她那又浓又黑的眼睫正如他读过的爱情故事里的那些女孩子的眼睛那样,含着羞怯和爱情在忽闪呢! 他接连三遍清了清嗓子准备说话,可是每次都没说出来。 他垂下眼睛,因为它们跟思嘉那双锋利得像要穿透他又似乎没有看见他的绿色的眼睛恰好相遇了。 “他有很多钱,"她匆匆地想,一个念头和一个计谋接连在脑子里闪过。"他也没有父母来干涉我,而他又住在亚特兰大。如果我马上同他结婚,那会叫艾希礼明白我一点也不在乎 ----我本来就只是逗他玩玩罢了。这样也可以把霍妮活活气死。她永远永远也休想再弄到一个情人,而别人则会把她笑话死的。这还会叫媚兰痛心,因为她是最爱查尔斯的。同时斯图特和布伦特也会难过----"她不明白自己为什么要伤害这两个人,大概因为他们有几位阴险的姐妹吧。"这样,等到我坐着漂亮的马车,带着大批华丽的衣服,有了一幢自己的住宅,再回到这里来拜访时,他们就要感到不好受了。他们就会永远永远也不笑话我了。”“当然了,这意味着真要打起来了,"查尔斯经过好几次挣扎才说出这话。"思嘉小姐,不过你不用担扰,一个月便会完事的。我们要打得他们嚎着求饶。是呀,先生,嚎叫吧!我决不错过这个机会。我怕的是今天晚上的舞会要开不成了,因为营里要在琼斯博罗集合呢。塔尔顿的哥儿们已经去通知大家了。我知道小姐太太们会感到遗憾的。"因为想不出更好的词来,她只" 哦"了一声,不过这也就够了。 她已经开始恢复冷静,思想也在逐渐集中。她的满怀激情已被覆盖上一层霜雪,她认为永远也不会再有什么温暖的感觉了。干吗不拿下这个脸蛋儿红仆仆的漂亮小伙子呢?他和旁的小伙子一样,她也一样不感兴趣,不,她从此对任何事物也不会感兴趣了,哪怕活到90岁也罢。 “我现在还不能决定究竟是否参加韦德·汉普顿先生的南卡罗来纳兵团呢,还是加入亚大特兰大的城防警卫队。"她又"哦"了一声,两人的眼光碰在一起,她那颤动的眼睫毛立刻使他神魂颠倒了。 “思嘉小姐,你肯等我吗?只要----只要知道你在等我,直到我们干掉他们,那就简直像天堂一样幸福了!"他平息静气等待她回答,他看着她嘴角上的动静,同时第一次注意到嘴角两边的酒窝,心想要是吻它一吻,那该多么美妙啊!这当儿,她那两只手心冒着热气已溜进他的手里了。 “我倒不想等呢。"她说着,眼睛朦胧地微闭起来。 他握住她的手坐在那里,嘴张得大大的。这时思嘉从眼睫毛觑着他。客观地认为他像一只被人叉起的蛤螅他结巴了好几次,那张嘴闭了又张开,同时满脸通红,像朵天竺葵。 “你可能爱我吗?” 她只低头望着自己的衣襟,一声不吭,这又把查斯弄得时而异想天开,时而困惑莫解,也许一个男人不该向姑娘提出这样的问题吧,也许要回答这个问题,对她来说未免有失处女的体面吧,查尔斯由于以前从来不敢闯入这种局面,所以现在感到茫然不知所措。他想喊叫,想唱歌,想吻她,想在这块草地周围跳跃,然后跑去告诉所有的人,包括包白人和黑人,说她爱他。可是他坐在那里一动不动,只紧紧握住她的手,把她的戒指快掐进肉里去了。 “思嘉小姐你愿意很快跟我结婚吗?” “唔,"她哼着鼻子应了一声,继续用手指摆弄衣裳的皱褶。 “我们要不要同时举行婚礼,跟媚兰----”“不,"她连忙说,两只熠熠生光的眼睛似有愠色地仰望着他。查尔斯明白又是自己犯错误了。当然,一个女孩子要的是自己单独的婚礼----不能与别人共享荣耀。她能不介意他的这种卤莽,倒是很难得的。他恨不得此刻早已天黑,让他敢于在夜色中拿起她的手来吻,并且把自己想说的话都说出来。 “我什么时候对你父亲说好呢?” “越快越好,"她说,但愿他能放松一些,不再那样狠狠地紧握着她那些戴指环的手指,要不她就只好提出请求了。 他一听便跳起来,这时她还以为他已顾不得什么体面,要去欢蹦乱跳一番。可是他却笑容满面地俯视着她,仿佛他那颗洁净而单纯的心已完整地反映在他的眼光中。以前从没有人这样看过她,以后也再不会有别的人来这样看她了。可是此刻在他那古怪的超然心态下,她反而只想到他很像一只小牛犊。 “我现在就去找你父亲,"他喜气洋洋地说。"我不能等了。 亲爱的,请原谅我好吗?”这一亲昵的称呼好不容易才说出来,可一经说出他便愉快地反复使用起来。 “好吧,"她说,"我在这里等你。这里很舒服、很凉快。"他走开了,穿过草地拐到屋后去了。她独自坐在瑟瑟有声橡树下。从马棚那边,男人们正沿着马川流不息地出来,黑人奴仆紧跟在后,芒罗家的小伙子们一路挥着帽子飞奔而过,方丹家和卡弗特家的已经喊叫着沿大路跑去了。塔尔顿家四兄弟也冲过来,穿过思嘉身边的草地,布伦特喊道:“妈妈就要给咱们马啦!咳----呀----咳!"草皮纷纷飞扬,他们一溜烟走了,又剩下思嘉独自坐在那里。 现在它已永远不会属于她了。那幢白房子将它的高高圆柱竖立在她面前,似乎庄严而疏远地渐渐向后隐退。艾希礼永远不会带着她作为新娘跨过它的门槛了。啊,艾希礼,艾希礼!我究竟干了些什么啊?她内心深处,在受了伤害的骄矜和冷漠的实际覆盖下,有种东西在可怕地躁动。一种成年人的情感正在诞生,它比她的虚荣心或固执的自私心更为强大。她爱艾希礼,她也知道自己爱他,可是对于这一点,她还从来没有像看见查尔斯在那弯弯的碎石路上消失时那样耿耿于怀呢。 |
CHAPTER VI THEY CROSSED the river and the carriage mounted the hill. Even before Twelve Oaks came into view Scarlett saw a haze of smoke hanging lazily in the tops of the tall trees and smelled the mingled savory odors of burning hickory logs and roasting pork and mutton. The barbecue pits, which had been slowly burning since last night, would now be long troughs of rose-red embers, with the meats turning on spits above them and the juices trickling down and hissing into the coals. Scarlett knew that the fragrance carried on the faint breeze came from the grove of great oaks in the rear of the big house. John Wilkes always held his barbecues there, on the gentle slope leading down to the rose garden, a pleasant shady place and a far pleasanter place, for instance, than that used by the Calverts. Mrs. Calvert did not like barbecue food and declared that the smells remained in the house for days, so her guests always sweltered on a flat unshaded spot a quarter of a mile from the house. But John Wilkes, famed throughout the state for his hospitality, really knew how to give a barbecue. The long trestled picnic tables, covered with the finest of the Wilkeses’ linen, always stood under the thickest shade, with backless benches on either side; and chairs, hassocks and cushions from the house were scattered about the glade for those who did not fancy the benches. At a distance great enough to keep the smoke away from the guests were the long pits where the meats cooked and the huge iron wash-pots from which the succulent odors of barbecue sauce and Brunswick stew floated. Mr. Wilkes always had at least a dozen darkies busy running back and forth with trays to serve the guests. Over behind the barns there was always another barbecue pit, where the house servants and the coachmen and maids of the guests had their own feast of hoecakes and yams and chitterlings, that dish of hog entrails so dear to negro hearts, and, in season, watermelons enough to satiate. As the smell of crisp fresh pork came to her, Scarlett wrinkled her nose appreciatively, hoping that by the time it was cooked she would feel some appetite. As it was, she was so full of food and so tightly laced that she feared every moment she was going to belch. That would be fatal, as only old men and very old ladies could belch without fear of social disapproval. They topped the rise and the white house reared its perfect symmetry before her, tall of columns, wide of verandas, flat of roof, beautiful as a woman is beautiful who is so sure of her charm that she can be generous and gracious to all. Scarlett loved Twelve Oaks even more than Tara, for it had a stately beauty, a mellowed dignity that Gerald’s house did not possess. The wide curving driveway was full of saddle horses and carriages and guests alighting and calling greetings to friends. Grinning negroes, excited as always at a party, were leading the animals to the barnyard to be unharnessed and unsaddled for the day. Swarms of children, black and white, ran yelling about the newly green lawn, playing hopscotch and tag and boasting how much they were going to eat. The wide hall which ran from front to back of the house was swarming with people, and as the O’Hara carriage drew up at the front steps, Scarlett saw girls in crinolines, bright as butterflies, going up and coming down the stairs from the second floor, arms about each other’s waists, stopping to lean over the delicate handrail of the banisters, laughing and calling to young men in the hall below them. Through the open French windows, she caught glimpses of the older women seated in the drawing room, sedate in dark silks as they sat fanning themselves and talking of babies and sicknesses and who had married whom and why. The Wilkes butler, Tom, was hurrying through the halls, a silver tray in his hands, bowing and grinning, as he offered tall glasses to young men in fawn and gray trousers and fine ruffled linen shirts. The sunny front veranda was thronged with guests. Yes, the whole County was here, thought Scarlett. The four Tarleton boys and their father leaned against the tall columns, the twins, Stuart and Brent, side by side inseparable as usual, Boyd and Tom with their father, James Tarleton. Mr. Calvert was standing close by the side of his Yankee wife, who even after fifteen years in Georgia never seemed to quite belong anywhere. Everyone was very polite and kind to her because he felt sorry for her, but no one could forget that she had compounded her initial error of birth by being the governess of Mr. Calvert’s children. The two Calvert boys, Raiford and Cade, were there with their dashing blonde sister, Cathleen, teasing the dark-faced Joe Fontaine and Sally Munroe, his pretty bride-to-be. Alex and Tony Fontaine were whispering in the ears of Dimity Munroe and sending her into gales of giggles. There were families from as far as Lovejoy, ten miles away, and from Fayetteville and Jonesboro, a few even from Atlanta and Macon. The house seemed bursting with the crowd, and a ceaseless babble of talking and laughter and giggles and shrill feminine squeaks and screams rose and fell. On the porch steps stood John Wilkes, silver-haired, erect, radiating the quiet charm and hospitality that was as warm and never failing as the sun of Georgia summer. Beside him Honey Wilkes, so called because she indiscriminately addressed everyone from her father to the field hands by that endearment, fidgeted and giggled as she called greetings to the arriving guests. Honey’s nervously obvious desire to be attractive to every man in sight contrasted sharply with her father’s poise, and Scarlett had the thought that perhaps there was something in what Mrs. Tarleton said, after all. Certainly the Wilkes men got the family looks. The thick deep-gold lashes that set off the gray eyes of John Wilkes and Ashley were sparse and colorless in the faces of Honey and her sister India. Honey had the odd lashless look of a rabbit, and India could be described by no other word than plain. India was nowhere to be seen, but Scarlett knew she probably was in the kitchen giving final instructions to the servants. Poor India, thought Scarlett, she’s had so much trouble keeping house since her mother died that she’s never had the chance to catch any beau except Stuart Tarleton, and it certainly wasn’t my fault if he thought I was prettier than she. John Wilkes came down the steps to offer his arm to Scarlett. As she descended from the carriage, she saw Suellen smirk and knew that she must have picked out Frank Kennedy in the crowd. If I couldn’t catch a better beau than that old maid in britches! she thought contemptuously, as she stepped to the ground and smiled her thanks to John Wilkes. Frank Kennedy was hurrying to the carriage to assist Suellen, and Suellen was bridling in a way that made Scarlett want to slap her. Frank Kennedy might own more land than anyone in the County and he might have a very kind heart, but these things counted for nothing against the fact that he was forty, slight and nervous and had a thin ginger-colored beard and an old-maidish, fussy way about him. However, remembering her plan, Scarlett smothered her contempt and cast such a flashing smile of greeting at him that he stopped short, his arm outheld to Suellen and goggled at Scarlett in pleased bewilderment. Scarlett’s eyes searched the crowd for Ashley, even while she made pleasant small talk with John Wilkes, but he was not on the porch. There were cries of greeting from a dozen voices and Stuart and Brent Tarleton moved toward her. The Munroe girls rushed up to exclaim over her dress, and she was speedily the center of a circle of voices that rose higher and higher in efforts to be heard above the din. But where was Ashley? And Melanie and Charles? She tried not to be obvious as she looked about and peered down the hall into the laughing group inside. As she chattered and laughed and cast quick glances into the house and the yard, her eyes fell on a stranger, standing alone in the hall, staring at her in a cool impertinent way that brought her up sharply with a mingled feeling of feminine pleasure that she had attracted a man and an embarrassed sensation that her dress was too low in the bosom. He looked quite old, at least thirty-five. He was a tall man and powerfully built. Scarlett thought she had never seen a man with such wide shoulders, so heavy with muscles, almost too heavy for gentility. When her eye caught his, he smiled, showing animal-white teeth below a close-clipped black mustache. He was dark of face, swarthy as a pirate, and his eyes were as bold and black as any pirate’s appraising a galleon to be scuttled or a maiden to be ravished. There was a cool recklessness in his face and a cynical humor in his mouth as he smiled at her, and Scarlett caught her breath. She felt that she should be insulted by such a look and was annoyed with herself because she did not feel insulted. She did not know who he could be, but there was undeniably a look of good blood in his dark face. It showed in the thin hawk nose over the full red lips, the high forehead and the wide-set eyes. She dragged her eyes away from his without smiling back, and he turned as someone called: “Rhett! Rhett Butler! Come here! I want you to meet the most hard-hearted girl in Georgia.” Rhett Butler? The name had a familiar sound, somehow connected with something pleasantly scandalous, but her mind was on Ashley and she dismissed the thought. “I must run upstairs and smooth my hair,” she told Stuart and Brent, who were trying to get her cornered from the crowd. “You boys wait for me and don’t run off with any other girl or I’ll be furious.” She could see that Stuart was going to be difficult to handle today if she flirted with anyone else. He had been drinking and wore the arrogant looking-for-a-fight expression that she knew from experience meant trouble. She paused in the hall to speak to friends and to greet India who was emerging from the back of the house, her hair untidy and tiny beads of perspiration on her forehead. Poor India! It would be bad enough to have pale hair and eyelashes and a hitting chin that meant a stubborn disposition, without being twenty years old and an old maid in the bargain. She wondered if India resented very much her taking Stuart away from her. Lots of people said she was still in love with him, but then you could never tell what a Wilkes was thinking about. If she did resent it, she never gave any sign of it, treating Scarlett with the same slightly aloof, kindly courtesy she had always shown her. Scarlett spoke pleasantly to her and started up the wide stairs. As she did, a shy voice behind her called her name and, turning, she saw Charles Hamilton. He was a nice-looking boy with a riot of soft brown curls on his white forehead and eyes as deep brown, as clean and as gentle as a collie dog’s. He was well turned out in mustard-colored trousers and black coat and his pleated shirt was topped by the widest and most fashionable of black cravats. A faint blush was creeping over his face as she turned, for he was timid with girls. Like most shy men he greatly admired airy, vivacious, always-at-ease girls like Scarlett. She had never given him more than perfunctory courtesy before, and so the beaming smile of pleasure with which she greeted him and the two hands outstretched to his almost took his breath away. “Why Charles Hamilton, you handsome old thing, you! I’ll bet you came all the way down here from Atlanta just to break my poor heart!” Charles almost stuttered with excitement, holding her warm little hands in his and looking into the dancing green eyes. This was the way girls talked to other boys but never to him. He never knew why but girls always treated him like a younger brother and were very kind, but never bothered to tease him. He had always wanted girls to flirt end frolic with him as they did with boys much less handsome and less endowed with this world’s goods than he. But on the few occasions when this had happened he could never think of anything to say and he suffered agonies of embarrassment at his dumbness. Then he lay awake at night thinking of all the charming gallantries he might have employed; but he rarely got a second chance, for the girls left him alone after a trial or two. Even with Honey, with whom he had an unspoken understanding of marriage when he came into his property next fall, he was diffident and silent. At times, he had an ungallant feeling that Honey’s coquetries and proprietary airs were no credit to him, for she was so boy-crazy he imagined she would use them on any man who gave her the opportunity. Charles was not excited over the prospect of marrying her, for she stirred in him none of the emotions of wild romance that his beloved books had assured him were proper for a lover. He had always yearned to be loved by some beautiful, dashing creature full of fire and mischief. And here was Scarlett O’Hara teasing him about breaking her heart! He tried to think of something to say and couldn’t, and silently he blessed her because she kept up a steady chatter which relieved him of any necessity for conversation. It was too good to be true. “Now, you wait right here till I come back, for I want to eat barbecue with you. And don’t you go off philandering with those other girls, because I’m mighty jealous,” came the incredible words from red lips with a dimple on each side; and briskly black lashes swept demurely over green eyes. “I won’t,” he finally managed to breathe, never dreaming that she was thinking he looked like a calf waiting for the butcher. Tapping him lightly on the arm with her folded fan, she turned to start up the stairs and her eyes again fell on the man called Rhett Butler who stood alone a few feet away from Charles. Evidently he had overheard the whole conversation, for he grinned up at her as maliciously as a tomcat, and again his eyes went over her, in a gaze totally devoid of the deference she was accustomed to. “God’s nightgown!” said Scarlett to herself in indignation, using Gerald’s favorite oath. “He looks as if—as if he knew what I looked like without my shimmy,” and, tossing her head, she went up the steps. In the bedroom where the wraps were laid, she found Cathleen Calvert preening before the mirror and biting her lips to make them look redder. There were fresh roses in her sash that matched her cheeks, and her cornflower-blue eyes were dancing with excitement. “Cathleen,” said Scarlett, trying to pull the corsage of her dress higher, “who is that nasty man downstairs named Butler?” “My dear, don’t you know?” whispered Cathleen excitedly, a weather eye on the next room where Dilcey and the Wilkes girls’ mammy were gossiping. “I can’t imagine how Mr. Wilkes must feel having him here, but he was visiting Mr. Kennedy in Jonesboro—something about buying cotton—and, of course, Mr. Kennedy had to bring him along with him. He couldn’t just go off and leave him.” “What is the matter with him?” “My dear, he isn’t received!” “Not really!” “No.” Scarlett digested this in silence, for she had never before been under the same roof with anyone who was not received. It was very exciting. “What did he do?” “Oh, Scarlett, he has the most terrible reputation. His name is Rhett Butler and he’s from Charleston and his folks are some of the nicest people there, but they won’t even speak to him. Caro Rhett told me about him last summer. He isn’t any kin to her family, but she knows all about him, everybody does. He was expelled from West Point. Imagine! And for things too bad for Caro to know. And then there was that business about the girl he didn’t marry.” “Do tell me!” “Darling, don’t you know anything? Caro told me all about it last summer and her mama would die if she thought Caro even knew about it. Well, this Mr. Butler took a Charleston girl out buggy riding. I never did know who she was, but I’ve got my suspicions. She couldn’t have been very nice or she wouldn’t have gone out with him in the late afternoon without a chaperon. And, my dear, they stayed out nearly all night and walked home finally, saying the horse had run away and smashed the buggy and they had gotten lost in the woods. And guess what—” “I can’t guess. Tell me,” said Scarlett enthusiastically, hoping for the worst. “He refused to marry her the next day!” “Oh,” said Scarlett, her hopes dashed. “He said he hadn’t—er—done anything to her and he didn’t see why he should marry her. And, of course, her brother called him out, and Mr. Butler said he’d rather be shot than marry a stupid fool. And so they fought a duel and Mr. Butler shot the girl’s brother and he died, and Mr. Butler had to leave Charleston and now nobody receives him,” finished Cathleen triumphantly, and just in time, for Dilcey came back into the room to oversee the toilet of her charge. “Did she have a baby?” whispered Scarlett in Cathleen’s ear. Cathleen shook her head violently. “But she was ruined just the same,” she hissed back. I wish I had gotten Ashley to compromise me, thought Scarlett suddenly. He’d be too much of a gentleman not to marry me. But somehow, unbidden, she had a feeling of respect for Rhett Butler for refusing to marry a girl who was a fool. Scarlett sat on a high rosewood ottoman, under the shade of a huge oak in the rear of the house, her flounces and ruffles billowing about her and two inches of green morocco slippers—all that a lady could show and still remain a lady—peeping from beneath them. She had scarcely touched plate in her hands and seven cavaliers about her. The barbecue had reached its peak and the warm air was full of laughter and talk, the click of silver on porcelain and the rich heavy smells of roasting meats and redolent gravies. Occasionally when the slight breeze veered, puffs of smoke from the long barbecue pits floated over the crowd and were greeted with squeals of mock dismay from the ladies and violent flappings of palmetto fans. Most of the young ladies were seated with partners on the long benches that faced the tables, but Scarlett, realizing that a girl has only two sides and only one man can sit on each of these sides, had elected to sit apart so she could gather about her as many men as possible. Under the arbor sat the married women, their dark dresses decorous notes in the surrounding color and gaiety. Matrons, regardless of their ages, always grouped together apart from the bright-eyed girls, beaux and laughter, for there were no married belles in the South. From Grandma Fontaine, who was belching frankly with the privilege of her age, to seventeen-year-old Alice Munroe, struggling against the nausea of a first pregnancy, they had their heads together in the endless genealogical and obstetrical discussions that made such gatherings very pleasant and instructive affairs. Casting contemptuous glances at them, Scarlett thought that they looked like a clump of fat crows. Married women never had any fun. It did not occur to her that if she married Ashley she would automatically be relegated to arbors and front parlors with staid matrons in dull silks, as staid and dull as they and not a part of the fun and frolicking. Like most girls, her imagination carried her just as far as the altar and no further. Besides, she was too unhappy now to pursue an abstraction. She dropped her eyes to her plate and nibbled daintily on a beaten biscuit with an elegance and an utter lack of appetite that would have won Mammy’s approval. For all that she had a superfluity of beaux, she had never been more miserable in her life. In some way that she could not understand, her plans of last night had failed utterly so far as Ashley was concerned. She had attracted other beaux by the dozens, but not Ashley, and all the fears of yesterday afternoon were sweeping back upon her, making her heart beat fast and then slow, and color flame and whiten in her cheeks. Ashley had made no attempt to join the circle about her, in fact she had not had a word alone with him since arriving, or even spoken to him since their first greeting. He had come forward to welcome her when she came into the back garden, but Melanie had been on his arm then, Melanie who hardly came up to his shoulder. She was a tiny, frailly built girl, who gave the appearance of a child masquerading in her mother’s enormous hoop skirts—an illusion that was heightened by the shy, almost frightened look in her too large brown eyes. She had a cloud of curly dark hair which was so sternly repressed beneath its net that no vagrant tendrils escaped, and this dark mass, with its long widow’s peak, accentuated the heart shape of her face. Too wide across the cheek bones, too pointed at the chin, it was a sweet, timid face but a plain face, and she had no feminine tricks of allure to make observers forget its plainness. She looked—and was—as simple as earth, as good as bread, as transparent as spring water. But for all her plainness of feature and smallness of stature, there was a sedate dignity about her movements that was oddly touching and far older than her seventeen years. Her gray organdie dress, with its cherry-colored satin sash, disguised with its billows and ruffles how childishly undeveloped her body was, and the yellow hat with long cherry streamers made her creamy skin glow. Her heavy earbobs with their long gold fringe hung down from loops of tidily netted hair, swinging close to her brown eyes, eyes that had the still gleam of a forest pool in winter when brown leaves shine up through quiet water. She had smiled with timid liking when she greeted Scarlett and told her how pretty her green dress was, and Scarlett had been hard put to be even civil in reply, so violently did she want to speak alone with Ashley. Since then, Ashley had sat on a stool at Melanie’s feet, apart from the other guests, and talked quietly with her, smiling the slow drowsy smile that Scarlett loved. What made matters worse was that under his smile a little sparkle had come into Melanie’s eyes, so that even Scarlett had to admit that she looked almost pretty. As Melanie looked at Ashley, her plain face lit up as with an inner fire, for if ever a loving heart showed itself upon a face, it was showing now on Melanie Hamilton’s. Scarlett tried to keep her eyes from these two but could not, and after each glance she redoubled her gaiety with her cavaliers, laughing, saying daring things, teasing, tossing her head at their compliments until her earrings danced. She said “fiddle-dee-dee” many times, declared that the truth wasn’t in any of them, and vowed that she’d never believe anything any man told her. But Ashley did not seem to notice her at all. He only looked up at Melanie and talked on, and Melanie looked down at him with an expression that radiated the fact that she belonged to him. So, Scarlett was miserable. To the outward eye, never had a girl less cause to he miserable. She was undoubtedly the belle of the barbecue, the center of attention. The furore she was causing among the men, coupled with the heart burnings of the other girls, would have pleased her enormously at any other time. Charles Hamilton, emboldened by her notice, was firmly planted on her right, refusing to be dislodged by the combined efforts of the Tarteton twins. He held her fan in one hand and his untouched plate of barbecue in the other and stubbornly refused to meet the eyes of Honey, who seemed on the verge of an outburst of tears. Cade lounged gracefully on her left, plucking at her skirt to attract her attention and staring up with smoldering eyes at Stuart Already the air was electric between him and the twins and rude words had passed. Frank Kennedy fussed about like a hen with one chick, running back and forth from the shade of the oak to the tables to fetch dainties to tempt Scarlett, as if there were not a dozen servants there for that purpose. As a result, Suellen’s sullen resentment had passed beyond the point of ladylike concealment and she glowered at Scarlett Small Carreen could have cried because, for all Scarlett’s encouraging words that morning, Brent had done no more than say “Hello, Sis” and jerk her hair ribbon before turning his full attention to Scarlett. Usually he was so kind and treated her with a careless deference that made her feel grown up, and Carreen secretly dreamed of the day when she would put her hair up and her skirts down and receive him as a real beau. And now it seemed that Scarlett had him. The Munroe girls were concealing their chagrin at the defection of the swarthy Fontaine boys, but they were annoyed at the way Tony and Alex stood about the circle, jockeying for a position near Scarlett should any of the others arise from their places. They telegraphed their disapproval of Scarlett’s conduct to Hetty Tarleton by delicately raised eyebrows. “Fast” was the only word for Scarlett. Simultaneously, the three young ladies raised lacy parasols, said they had had quite enough to eat thank you, and, laying light fingers on the arms of the men nearest them, clamored sweetly to see the rose garden, the spring and the summerhouse. This strategic retreat in good order was not lost on a woman present or observed by a man. Scarlett giggled as she saw three men dragged out of the line of her charms to investigate landmarks familiar to the girls from childhood, and cut her eye sharply to see if Ashley had taken note. But he was playing with the ends of Melanie’s sash and smiling up at her. Pain twisted Scarlett’s heart. She felt that she could claw Melanie’s ivory skin till the blood ran and take pleasure in doing it. As her eyes wandered from Melanie, she caught the gaze of Rhett Butler, who was not mixing with the crowd but standing apart talking to John Wilkes. He had been watching her and when she looked at him he laughed outright. Scarlett had an uneasy feeling that this man who was not received was the only one present who knew what lay behind her wild gaiety and that it was affording him sardonic amusement. She could have clawed him with pleasure too. “If I can just live through this barbecue till this afternoon,” she thought, “all the girls will go upstairs to take naps to be fresh for tonight and I’ll stay downstairs and get to talk to Ashley. Surely he must have noticed how popular I am.” She soothed her heart with another hope: “Of course, he has to be attentive to Melanie because, after all, she is his cousin and she isn’t popular at all, and if he didn’t look out for her she’d just be a wallflower.” She took new courage at this thought and redoubled her efforts in the direction of Charles, whose brown eyes glowed down eagerly at her. It was a wonderful day for Charles, a dream day, and he had fallen in love with Scarlett with no effort at all. Before this new emotion, Honey receded into a dim haze. Honey was a shrill-voiced sparrow and Scarlett a gleaming hummingbird. She teased him and favored him and asked him questions and answered them herself, so that he appeared very clever without having to say a word. The other boys were puzzled and annoyed by her obvious interest in him, for they knew Charles was too shy to hitch two consecutive words together, and politeness was being severely strained to conceal their growing rage. Everyone was smoldering, and it would have been a positive triumph for Scarlett, except for Ashley. When the last forkful of pork and chicken and mutton had been eaten, Scarlett hoped the time had come when India would rise and suggest that the ladies retire to the house. It was two o’clock and the sun was warm overhead, but India, wearied with the three-day preparations for the barbecue, was only too glad to remain sitting beneath the arbor, shouting remarks to a deaf old gentleman from Fayetteville. A lazy somnolence descended on the crowd. The negroes idled about, clearing the long tables on which the food had been laid. The laughter and talking became less animated and groups here and there fell silent. All were waiting for their hostess to signal the end of the morning’s festivities. Palmetto fans were wagging more slowly, and several gentlemen were nodding from the heat and overloaded stomachs. The barbecue was over and all were content to take their ease while sun was at its height. In this interval between the morning party and the evening’s ball, they seemed a placid, peaceful lot. Only the young men retained the restless energy which had filled the whole throng a short while before. Moving from group to group, drawling in their soft voices, they were as handsome as blooded stallions and as dangerous. The languor of midday had taken hold of the gathering, but underneath lurked tempers that could rise to killing heights in a second and flare out as quickly. Men and women, they were beautiful and wild, all a little violent under their pleasant ways and only a little tamed. Some time dragged by while the sun grew hotter, and Scarlett and others looked again toward India. Conversation was dying out when, in the lull, everyone in the grove heard Gerald’s voice raised in furious accents. Standing some little distance away from the barbecue tables, he was at the peak of an argument with John Wilkes. “God’s nightgown, man! Pray for a peaceable settlement with the Yankees. After we’ve fired on the rascals at Fort Sumter? Peaceable? The South should show by arms that she cannot be insulted and that she is not leaving the Union by the Union’s kindness but by her own strength!” “Oh, my God!” thought Scarlett. “He’s done it! Now, we’ll all sit here till midnight.” In an instant, the somnolence had fled from the lounging throng and something electric went snapping through the air. The men sprang from benches and chain, arms in wide gestures, voices clashing for the right to be heard above other voices. There had been no talk of politics or impending war all during the morning, because of Mr. Wilkes’ request that the ladies should not be bored. But now Gerald had bawled the words “Fort Sumter,” and every man present forgot his host’s admonition. “Of course we’ll fight—” “Yankee thieves—” “We could lick them in a month—” “Why, one Southerner can lick twenty Yankees—” “Teach them a lesson they won’t soon forget—” “Peaceably? They won’t let us go in peace—” “No, look how Mr. Lincoln insulted our Commissioners!” “Yes, kept them hanging around for weeks—swearing he’d have Sumter evacuated!” They want war; we’ll make them sick of war—” And above all the voices, Gerald’s boomed. All Scarlett could hear was “States’ rights, by God!” shouted over and over. Gerald was having an excellent time, but not his daughter. Secession, war—these words long since had become acutely boring to Scarlett from much repetition, but now she hated the sound of them, for they meant that the men would stand there for hours haranguing one another and she would have no chance to corner Ashley. Of course there would be no war and the men all knew it. They just loved to talk and hear themselves talk. Charles Hamilton had not risen with the others and, finding himself comparatively alone with Scarlett, he leaned closer and, with the daring born of new love, whispered a confession. “Miss O’Hara—I—I had already decided that if we did fight, I’d go over to South Carolina and join a troop there. It’s said that Mr. Wade Hampton is organizing a cavalry troop, and of course I would want to go with him. He’s a splendid person and was my father’s best friend.” Scarlett thought, “What am I supposed to do—give three cheers?” for Charles’ expression showed that he was baring his heart’s secrets to her. She could think of nothing to say and so merely looked at him, wondering why men were such fools as to think women interested in such matters. He took her expression to mean stunned approbation and went on rapidly, daringly— “If I went—would—would you be sorry, Miss O’Hara?” “I should cry into my pillow every night,” said Scarlett, meaning to be flippant, but he took the statement at face value and went red with pleasure. Her hand was concealed in the folds of her dress and he cautiously wormed his hand to it and squeezed it, overwhelmed at his own boldness and at her acquiescence. “Would you pray for me?” “What a fool!” thought Scarlett bitterly, casting a surreptitious glance about her in the hope of being rescued from the conversation. “Would you?” “Oh—yes, indeed, Mr. Hamilton. Three Rosaries a night, at least!” Charles gave a swift look about him, drew in his breath, stiffened the muscles of his stomach. They were practically alone and he might never get another such opportunity. And, even given another such Godsent occasion, his courage might fail him. “Miss O’Hara—I must tell you something. I—I love you!” “Um?” said Scarlett absently, trying to peer through the crowd of arguing men to where Ashley still sat talking at Melanie’s feet. “Yes!” whispered Charles, in a rapture that she had neither laughed, screamed nor fainted, as he had always imagined young girls did under such circumstances. “I love you! You are the most—the most—” and he found his tongue for the first time in his life. “The most beautiful girl I’ve ever known and the sweetest and the kindest, and you have the dearest ways and I love you with all my heart. I cannot hope that you could love anyone like me but, my dear Miss O’Hara, if you can give me any encouragement, I will do anything in the world to make you love me. I will—” Charles stopped, for he couldn’t think of anything difficult enough of accomplishment to really prove to Scarlett the depth of his feeling, so he said simply: “I want to marry you.” Scarlett came back to earth with a jerk, at the sound of the word “marry.” She had been thinking of marriage and of Ashley, and she looked at Charles with poorly concealed irritation. Why must this calf-like fool intrude his feelings on this particular day when she was so worried she was about to lose her mind? She looked into the pleading brown eyes and she saw none of the beauty of a shy boy’s first love, of the adoration of an ideal come true or the wild happiness and tenderness that were sweeping through him like a flame. Scarlett was used to men asking her to marry them, men much more attractive than Charles Hamilton, and men who had more finesse than to propose at a barbecue when she had more important matters on her mind. She only saw a boy of twenty, red as a beet and looking very silly. She wished that she could tell him how silly he looked. But automatically, the words Ellen had taught her to say in such emergencies rose to her lips and casting down her eyes, from force of long habit, she murmured: “Mr. Hamilton, I am not unaware of the honor you have bestowed on me in wanting me to become your wife, but this is all so sudden that I do not know what to say.” That was a neat way of smoothing a man’s vanity and yet keeping him on the string, and Charles rose to it as though such bait were new and he the first to swallow it. “I would wait forever! I wouldn’t want you unless you were quite sure. Please, Miss O’Hara, tell me that I may hope!” “Um,” said Scarlett, her sharp eyes noting that Ashley, who had not risen to take part in the war talk, was smiling up at Melanie. If this fool who was grappling for her hand would only keep quiet for a moment, perhaps she could hear what they were saying. She must hear what they said. What did Melanie say to him that brought that look of interest to his eyes? Charles’ words blurred the voices she strained to hear. “Oh, hush!” she hissed at him, pinching his hand and not even looking at him. Startled, at first abashed, Charles blushed at the rebuff and then, seeing how her eyes were fastened on his sister, he smiled. Scarlett was afraid someone might hear his words. She was naturally embarrassed and shy, and in agony lest they be overheard. Charles felt a surge of masculinity such as he had never experienced, for this was the first time in his life that he had ever embarrassed any girl. The thrill was intoxicating. He arranged his face in what he fancied was an expression of careless unconcern and cautiously returned Scarlett’s pinch to show that he was man of the world enough to understand and accept her reproof. She did not even feel his pinch, for she could hear clearly the sweet voice that was Melanie’s chief charm: “I fear I cannot agree with you about Mr. Thackeray’s works. He is a cynic. I fear be is not the gentleman Mr. Dickens is.” What a silly thing to say to a man, thought Scarlett, ready to giggle with relief. Why, she’s no more than a bluestocking and everyone knows what men think of bluestockings. ... The way to get a man interested and to hold his interest was to talk about him, and then gradually lead the conversation around to yourself—and keep it there. Scarlett would have felt some cause for alarm if Melanie had been saying: “How wonderful you are!” or “How do you ever think of such things? My little ole brain would bust if I even tried to think about them!” But here she was, with a man at her feet, talking as seriously as if she were in church. The prospect looked brighter to Scarlett, so bright in fact that she turned beaming eyes on Charles and smiled from pure joy. Enraptured at this evidence of her affection, he grabbed up her fan and plied it so enthusiastically her hair began to blow about untidily. “Ashley, you have not favored us with your opinion,” said Jim Tarleton, turning from the group of shouting men, and with an apology Ashley excused himself and rose. There was no one there so handsome, thought Scarlett, as she marked how graceful was his negligent pose and how the sun gleamed on his gold hair and mustache. Even the older men stopped to listen to his words. “Why, gentlemen, if Georgia fights. I’ll go with her. Why else would I have joined the Troop?” he said. His gray eyes opened wide and their drowsiness disappeared in an intensity that Scarlett had never seen before. “But, like Father, I hope the Yankees will let us go in peace and that there will be no fighting—” He held up his hand with a smile, as a babel of voices from the Fontaine and Tarleton boys began, “Yes, yes, I know we’ve been insulted and lied to—but if we’d been in the Yankees’ shoes and they were trying to leave the Union, how would we have acted? Pretty much the same. We wouldn’t have liked it.” “There he goes again,” thought Scarlett. “Always putting himself in the other fellow’s shoes.” To her, there was never but one fair side to an argument. Sometimes, there was no understanding Ashley. “Let’s don’t be too hot headed and let’s don’t have any war. Most of the misery of the world has been caused by wars. And when the wars were over, no one ever knew what they were all about.” Scarlett sniffed. Lucky for Ashley that he had an unassailable reputation for courage, or else there’d be trouble. As she thought this, the clamor of dissenting voices rose up about Ashley, indignant, fiery. Under the arbor, the deaf old gentleman from Fayetteville punched India. “What’s it all about? What are they saying?” “War!” shouted India, cupping her hand to his ear. “They want to fight the Yankees!” “War, is it?” he cried, fumbling about him for his cane and heaving himself out of his chair with more energy than he had shown in years. “I’ll tell ‘um about war. I’ve been there.” It was not often that Mr. McRae had the opportunity to talk about war, the way his women folks shushed him. He stumped rapidly to the group, waving his cane and shouting and, because he could not hear the voices about him, he soon had undisputed possession of the field. “You fire-eating young bucks, listen to me. You don’t want to fight. I fought and I know. Went out in the Seminole War and was a big enough fool to go to the Mexican War, too. You all don’t know what war is. You think it’s riding a pretty horse and having the girls throw flowers at you and coming home a hero. Well, it ain’t. No, sir! It’s going hungry, and getting the measles and pneumonia from sleeping in the wet. And if it ain’t measles and pneumonia, if s your bowels. Yes sir, what war does to a man’s bowels—dysentery and things like that—” The ladies were pink with blushes. Mr. McRae was a reminder of a cruder era, like Grandma Fontaine and her embarrassingly loud belches, an era everyone would like to forget. “Run get your grandpa,” hissed one of the old gentleman’s daughters to a young girl standing near by. “I declare,” she whispered to the fluttering matrons about her, “he gets worse every day. Would you believe it, this very morning he said to Mary—and she’s only sixteen: ‘Now, Missy ...’ ” And the voice went off into a whisper as the granddaughter slipped out to try to induce Mr. McRae to return to his seat in the shade. Of all the group that milled about under the trees, girls smiling excitedly, men talking impassionedly, there was only one who seemed calm. Scarlett’s eyes turned to Rhett Butler, who leaned against a tree, his hands shoved deep in his trouser pockets. He stood alone, since Mr. Wilkes had left his side, and had uttered no word as the conversation grew hotter. The red lips under the close-clipped black mustache curled down and there was a glint of amused contempt in his black eyes—contempt, as if he listened to the braggings of children. A very disagreeable smile, Scarlett thought. He listened quietly until Stuart Tarleton, his red hair tousled and his eyes gleaming, repeated: “Why, we could lick them in a month! Gentlemen always fight better than rabble. A month—why, one battle—” “Gentlemen,” said Rhett Butler, in a flat drawl that bespoke his Charleston birth, not moving from his position against the tree or taking his hands from his pockets, “may I say a word?” There was contempt in his manner as in his eyes, contempt overlaid with an air of courtesy that somehow burlesqued their own manners. The group turned toward him and accorded him the politeness always due an outsider. “Has any one of you gentlemen ever thought that there’s not a cannon factory south of the Mason-Dixon Line? Or how few iron foundries there are in the South? Or woolen mills or cotton factories or tanneries? Have you thought that we would not have a single warship and that the Yankee fleet could bottle up our harbors in a week, so that we could not sell our cotton abroad? But—of course—you gentlemen have thought of these things.” “Why, he means the boys are a passel of fools!” thought Scarlett indignantly, the hot blood coming to her cheeks. Evidently, she was not the only one to whom this idea occurred, for several of the boys were beginning to stick out their chins. John Wilkes casually but swiftly came back to his place beside the speaker, as if to impress on all present that this man was his guest and that, moreover, there were ladies present. “The trouble with most of us Southerners,” continued Rhett Butler, “is that we either don’t travel enough or we don’t profit enough by our travels. Now, of course, all you gentlemen are well traveled. But what have you seen? Europe and New York and Philadelphia and, of course, the ladies have been to Saratoga” (he bowed slightly to the group under the arbor). “You’ve seen the hotels and the museums and the balls and the gambling houses. And you’ve come home believing that there’s no place like the South. As for me, I was Charleston born, but I have spent the last few years in the North.” His white teeth showed in a grin, as though he realized that everyone present knew just why he no longer lived in Charleston, and cared not at all if they did know. “I have seen many things that you all have not seen. The thousands of immigrants who’d be glad to fight for the Yankees for food and a few dollars, the factories, the foundries, the shipyards, the iron and coal mines—all the things we haven’t got. Why, all we have is cotton and slaves and arrogance. They’d lick us in a month.” For a tense moment, there was silence. Rhett Butler removed a fine linen handkerchief from his coat pocket and idly flicked dust from his sleeve. Then an ominous murmuring arose in the crowd and from under the arbor came a humming as unmistakable as that of a hive of newly disturbed bees. Even while she felt the hot blood of wrath still in her cheeks, something in Scarlett’s practical mind prompted the thought that what this man said was right, and it sounded like common sense. Why, she’d never even seen a factory, or known anyone who had seen a factory. But, even if it were true, he was no gentleman to make such a statement—and at a party, too, where everyone was having a good time. Stuart Tarleton, brows lowering, came forward with Brent close at his heels. Of course, the Tarleton twins had nice manners and they wouldn’t make a scene at a barbecue, even though tremendously provoked. Just the same, all the ladies felt pleasantly excited, for it was so seldom that they actually saw a scene or a quarrel. Usually they had to hear of it third-hand. “Sir,” said Stuart heavily, “what do you mean?” Rhett looked at him with polite but mocking eyes. “I mean,” he answered, “what Napoleon—perhaps you’ve heard of him?—remarked once, ‘God is on the side of the strongest battalion!’ ” and, turning to John Wilkes, he said with courtesy that was unfeigned: “You promised to show me your library, sir. Would it be too great a favor to ask to see it now? I fear I must go back to Jonesboro early this afternoon where a bit of business calls me.” He swung about, facing the crowd, clicked his heels together and bowed like a dancing master, a bow that was graceful for so powerful a man, and as full of impertinence as a slap in the face. Then he walked across the lawn with John Wilkes, his black head in the air, and the sound of his discomforting laughter floated back to the group about the tables. There was a startled silence and then the buzzing broke out again. India rose tiredly from her seat beneath the arbor and went toward the angry Stuart Tarleton. Scarlett could not hear what she said, but the look in her eyes as she gazed up into his lowering face gave Scarlett something like a twinge of conscience. It was the same look of belonging that Melanie wore when she looked at Ashley, only Stuart did not see it. So India did love him. Scarlett thought for an instant that if she had not flirted so blatantly with Stuart at that political speaking a year ago, he might have married India long ere this. But then the twinge passed with the comforting thought that it wasn’t her fault if other girls couldn’t keep their men. Finally Stuart smiled down at India, an unwilling smile, and nodded his head. Probably India had been pleading with him not to follow Mr. Butler and make trouble. A polite tumult broke out under the trees as the guests arose, shaking crumbs from laps. The married women called to nurses and small children and gathered their broods together to take their departure, and groups of girls started off, laughing and talking, toward the house to exchange gossip in the upstairs bedrooms and to take their naps. All the ladies except Mrs. Tarleton moved out of the back yard, leaving the shade of oaks and arbor to the men. She was detained by Gerald, Mr. Calvert and the others who wanted an answer from her about the horses for the Troop. Ashley strolled over to where Scarlett and Charles sat, a thoughtful and amused smile on his face. “Arrogant devil, isn’t he?” he observed, looking after Butler. “He looks like one of the Borgias.” Scarlett thought quickly but could remember no family in the County or Atlanta or Savannah by that name. “I don’t know them. Is he kin to them? Who are they?” An odd look came over Charles’ face, incredulity and shame struggling with love. Love triumphed as he realized that it was enough for a girl to be sweet and gentle and beautiful, without having an education to hamper her charms, and he made swift answer: “The Borgias were Italians.” “Oh,” said Scarlett, losing interest, “foreigners.” She turned her prettiest smile on Ashley, but for some reason he was not looking at her. He was looking at Charles, and there was understanding in his face and a little pity. Scarlett stood on the landing and peered cautiously over the banisters into the hall below. It was empty. From the bedrooms on the floor above came an unending hum of low voices, rising and falling, punctuated with squeaks of laughter and, “Now, you didn’t, really!” and “What did he say then?” On the beds and couches of the six great bedrooms, the girls were resting, their dresses off, their stays loosed, their hair flowing down their backs. Afternoon naps were a custom of the country and never were they so necessary as on the all-day parties, beginning early in the morning and culminating in a ball. For half an hour, the girls would chatter and laugh, and then servants would pull the shutters and in the warm half-gloom the talk would die to whispers and finally expire in silence broken only by soft regular breathing. Scarlett had made certain that Melanie was lying down on the bed with Honey and Hetty Tarleton before she slipped into the hall and started down the stairs. From the window on the landing, she could see the group of men sitting under the arbor, drinking from tall glasses, and she knew they would remain there until late afternoon. Her eyes searched the group but Ashley was not among them. Then she listened and she heard his voice. As she had hoped, he was still in the front driveway bidding good-by to departing matrons and children. Her heart in her throat, she went swiftly down the stairs. What if she should meet Mr. Wilkes? What excuse could she give for prowling about the house when all the other girls were getting their beauty naps? Well, that had to be risked. As she reached the bottom step, she heard the servants moving about in the dining room under the butler’s orders, lifting out the table and chairs in preparation for the dancing. Across the wide hall was the open door of the library and she sped into it noiselessly. She could wait there until Ashley finished his adieux and then call to him when he came into the house. The library was in semidarkness, for the blinds had been drawn against the sun. The dim room with towering walls completely filled with dark books depressed her. It was not the place which she would have chosen for a tryst such as she hoped this one would be. Large numbers of books always depressed her, as did people who liked to read large numbers of books. That is—all people except Ashley. The heavy furniture rose up at her in the half-light, high-backed chairs with deep seats and wide arms, made for the tall Wilkes men, squatty soft chairs of velvet with velvet hassocks before them for the girls. Far across the long room before the hearth, the seven-foot sofa, Ashley’s favorite seat, reared its high back, like some huge sleeping animal. She closed the door except for a crack and tried to make her heart beat more slowly. She tried to remember just exactly what she had planned last night to say to Ashley, but she couldn’t recall anything. Had she thought up something and forgotten it—or had she only planned that Ashley should say something to her? She couldn’t remember, and a sudden cold fright fell upon her. If her heart would only stop pounding in her ears, perhaps she could think of what to say. But the quick thudding only increased as she heard him call a final farewell and walk into the front hall. All she could think of was that she loved him—everything about him, from the proud lift of his gold head to his slender dark boots, loved his laughter even when it mystified her, loved his bewildering silences. Oh, if only he would walk in on her now and take her in his arms, so she would be spared the need of saying anything. He must love her—”Perhaps if I prayed—” She squeezed her eyes tightly and began gabbling to herself “Hail Mary, full of grace—” “Why, Scarlett!” said Ashley’s voice, breaking in through the roaring in her ears and throwing her into utter confusion. He stood in the hall peering at her through the partly opened door, a quizzical smile on his face. “Who are you hiding from—Charles or the Tarletons?” She gulped. So he had noticed how the men had swarmed about her! How unutterably dear he was standing there with his eyes twinkling, all unaware of her excitement. She could not speak, but she put out a hand and drew him into the room. He entered, puzzled but interested. There was a tenseness about her, a glow in her eyes that he had never seen before, and even in the dim light he could see the rosy flush on her cheeks. Automatically be closed the door behind him and took her hand. “What is it?” he said, almost in a whisper. At the touch of his hand, she began to tremble. It was going to happen now, just as she had dreamed it. A thousand incoherent thoughts shot through her mind, and she could not catch a single one to mold into a word. She could only shake and look up into his face. Why didn’t he speak? “What is it?” he repeated. “A secret to tell me?” Suddenly she found her tongue and just as suddenly all the years of Ellen’s teachings fell away, and the forthright Irish blood of Gerald spoke from his daughter’s lips. “Yes—a secret I love you.” For an instance there was a silence so acute it seemed that neither of them even breathed. Then the trembling fell away from her, as happiness and pride surged through her. Why hadn’t she done this before? How much simpler than all the ladylike maneuverings she had been taught. And then her eyes sought his. There was a look of consternation in them, of incredulity and something more—what was it? Yes, Gerald had looked that way the day his pet hunter had broken his leg and he had had to shoot him. Why did she have to think of that now? Such a silly thought. And why did Ashley look so oddly and say nothing? Then something like a well-trained mask came down over his face and he smiled gallantly. “Isn’t it enough that you’ve collected every other man’s heart here today?” he said, with the old, teasing, caressing note in his voice. “Do you want to make it unanimous? Well, you’ve always had my heart, you know. You cut your teeth on it.” Something was wrong—all wrong! This was not the way she had planned it. Through the mad tearing of ideas round and round in her brain, one was beginning to take form. Somehow—for some reason—Ashley was acting as if he thought she was just flirting with him. But he knew differently. She knew he did. “Ashley—Ashley—tell me—you must—oh, don’t tease me now! Have I your heart? Oh, my dear, I lo—” His hand went across her lips, swiftly. The mask was gone. “You must not say these things, Scarlett! You mustn’t. You don’t mean them. You’ll hate yourself for saying them, and you’ll hate me for hearing them!” She jerked her head away. A hot swift current was running through her. “I couldn’t ever hate you. I tell you I love you and I know you must care about me because—” She stopped. Never before had she seen so much misery in anyone’s face. “Ashley, do you care—you do, don’t you?” “Yes,” he said dully. “I care.” If he had said he loathed her, she could not have been more frightened. She plucked at his sleeve, speechless. “Scarlett,” he said, “can’t we go away and forget that we have ever said these things?” “No,” she whispered. “I can’t. What do you mean? Don’t you want to—to marry me?” He replied, I’m going to marry Melanie.” Somehow she found that she was sitting on the low velvet chair and Ashley, on the hassock at her feet, was holding both her hands in his, in a hard grip. He was saying things—things that made no sense. Her mind was quite blank, quite empty of all the thoughts that had surged through it only a moment before, and his words made no more impression than rain on glass. They fell on unhearing ears, words that were swift and tender and full of pity, like a father speaking to a hurt child. The sound of Melanie’s name caught in her consciousness and she looked into his crystal-gray eyes. She saw in them the old remoteness that had always baffled her—and a look of self-hatred. “Father is to announce the engagement tonight. We are to be married soon. I should have told you, but I thought you knew. I thought everyone knew—had known for years. I never dreamed that you— You’ve so many beaux. I thought Stuart—” Life and feeling and comprehension were beginning to flow back into her. “But you just said you cared for me.” His warm hands hurt hers. “My dear, must you make me say things that will hurt you?” Her silence pressed him on. “How can I make you see these things, my dear. You who are so young and unthinking that you do not know what marriage means.” “I know I love you.” “Love isn’t enough to make a successful marriage when two people are as different as we are. You would want all of a man, Scarlett, his body, his heart, his soul, his thoughts. And if you did not have them, you would be miserable. And I couldn’t give you all of me. I couldn’t give all of me to anyone. And I would not want an of your mind and your soul. And you would be hurt, and then you would come to hate me—how bitterly! You would hate the books I read and the music I loved, because they took me away from you even for a moment And I—perhaps I—” “Do you love her?” “She is like me, part of my blood, and we understand each other. Scarlett! Scarlett! Can’t I make you see that a marriage can’t go on in any sort of peace unless the two people are alike?” Some one else had said that: “Like must marry like or there’ll be no happiness.” Who was it? It seemed a million years since she had heard that, but it still did not make sense. “But you said you cared.” “I shouldn’t have said it.” Somewhere in her brain, a slow fire rose and rage began to blot out everything else. “Well, having been cad enough to say it—” His face went white. “I was a cad to say it, as I’m going to marry Melanie. I did you a wrong and Melanie a greater one. I should not have said it, for I knew you wouldn’t understand. How could I help caring for you—you who have all the passion for life that I have not? You who can love and hate with a violence impossible to me? Why you are as elemental as fire and wind and wild things and I—” She thought of Melanie and saw suddenly her quiet brown eyes with their far-off look, her placid little hands in their black lace mitts, her gentle silences. And then her rage broke, the same rage that drove Gerald to murder and other Irish ancestors to misdeeds that cost them their necks. There was nothing in her now of the well-bred Robillards who could bear with white silence anything the world might cast. “Why don’t you say it, you coward! You’re afraid to marry me! You’d rather live with that stupid little fool who can’t open her mouth except to say ‘Yes’ or ‘No’ and raise a passel of mealy-mouthed brats just like her! Why—” “You must not say these things about Melanie!” “ ‘I mustn’t’ be damned to you! Who are you to tell me I mustn’t? You coward, you cad, you— You made me believe you were going to marry me—” “Be fair,” his voice pleaded. “Did I ever—” She did not want to be fair, although she knew what he said was true. He had never once crossed the borders of friendliness with her and, when she thought of this fresh anger rose, the anger of hurt pride and feminine vanity. She had run after him and he would have none of her. He preferred a whey-faced little fool like Melanie to her. Oh, far better that she had followed Ellen and Mammy’s precepts and never, never revealed that she even liked him—better anything than to be faced with this scorching shame! She sprang to her feet, her hands clenched and he rose towering over her. his face full of the mute misery of one forced to face realities when realities are agonies. “I shall hate you till I die, you cad—you lowdown—lowdown—” What was the word she wanted? She could not think of any word bad enough. “Scarlett—please—” He put out his hand toward her and, as he did, she slapped him across the face with all the strength she had. The noise cracked like a whip in the still room and suddenly her rage was gone, and there was desolation in her heart. The red mark of her hand showed plainly on his white tired face. He said nothing, but lifted her limp hand to his lips and kissed it. Then he was gone before she could speak again, closing the door softly behind him. She sat down again very suddenly, the reaction from her rage making her knees feel weak. He was gone and the memory of his stricken face would haunt her till she died. She heard the soft muffled sound of his footsteps dying away down the long hall, and the complete enormity of her actions came over her. She had lost him forever. Now he would hate her and every time he looked at her he would remember how she threw herself at him when he had given her no encouragement at all. “I’m as bad as Honey Wilkes,” she thought suddenly, and remembered how everyone, and she more than anyone else, had laughed contemptuously at Honey’s forward conduct. She saw Honey’s awkward wigglings and heard her silly titters as she hung onto boys’ arms, and the thought stung her to new rage, rage at herself, at Ashley, at the world. Because she hated herself, she hated them all with the fury of the thwarted and humiliated love of sixteen. Only a little true tenderness had been mixed into her love. Mostly it had been compounded out of vanity and complacent confidence in her own charms. Now she had lost and, greater than her sense of loss, was the fear that she had made a public spectacle of herself. Had she been as obvious as Honey? Was everyone laughing at her? She began to shake at the thought. Her hand dropped to a little table beside her, fingering a tiny china rose-bowl on which two china cherubs smirked. The room was so still she almost screamed to break the silence. She must do something or go mad. She picked up the bowl and hurled it viciously across the room toward the fireplace. It barely cleared the tall back of the sofa and splintered with a little crash against the marble mantelpiece. “This,” said a voice from the depths of the sofa, “is too much.” Nothing had ever startled or frightened her so much, and her mouth went too dry for her to utter a sound. She caught hold of the back of the chair, her knees going weak under her, as Rhett Butler rose from the sofa where he had been lying and made her a bow of exaggerated politeness. “It is bad enough to have an afternoon nap disturbed by such a passage as I’ve been forced to hear, but why should my life be endangered?” He was real. He wasn’t a ghost. But, saints preserve us, he had heard everything! She rallied her forces into a semblance of dignity. “Sir, you should have made known your presence.” “Indeed?” His white teeth gleamed and his bold dark eyes laughed at her. “But you were the intruder. I was forced to wait for Mr. Kennedy, and feeling that I was perhaps persona non grata in the back yard, I was thoughtful enough to remove my unwelcome presence here where I thought I would be undisturbed. But, alas!” he shrugged and laughed softly. Her temper was beginning to rise again at the thought that this rude and impertinent man had heard everything—heard things she now wished she had died before she ever uttered. “Eavesdroppers—” she began furiously. “Eavesdroppers often hear highly entertaining and instructive things,” he grinned. “From a long experience in eavesdropping, I—” “Sir,” she said, “you are no gentleman!” “An apt observation,” he answered airily. “And, you, Miss, are no lady.” He seemed to find her very amusing, for he laughed softly again. “No one can remain a lady after saying and doing what I have just overheard. However, ladies have seldom held any charms for me. I know what they are thinking, but they never have the courage or lack of breeding to say what they think. And that, in time, becomes a bore. But you, my dear Miss O’Hara, are a girl of rare spirit, very admirable spirit, and I take off my hat to you. I fail to understand what charms the elegant Mr. Wilkes can hold for a girl of your tempestuous nature. He should thank God on bended knee for a girl with your—how did he put it?—‘passion for living,’ but being a poor-spirited wretch—” “You aren’t fit to wipe his boots!” she shouted in rage. “And you were going to hate him all your life!” He sank down on the sofa and she heard him laughing. If she could have killed him, she would have done it. Instead, she walked out of the room with such dignity as she could summon and banged the heavy door behind her. She went up the stairs so swiftly that when she reached the landing, she thought she was going to faint. She stopped, clutching the banisters, her heart hammering so hard from anger, insult and exertion that it seemed about to burst through her basque. She tried to draw deep breaths but Mammy’s lacings were too tight. If she should faint and they should find her here on the landing, what would they think? Oh, they’d think everything, Ashley and that vile Butler man and those nasty girls who were so jealous! For once in her life, she wished that she carried smelling salts, like the other girls, but she had never even owned a vinaigrette. She had always been so proud of never feeling giddy. She simply could not let herself faint now! Gradually the sickening feeling began to depart. In a minute, she’d feel all right and then she’d slip quietly into the little dressing room adjoining India’s room, unloose her stays and creep in and lay herself on one of the beds beside the sleeping girls. She tried to quiet her heart and fix her face into more composed lines, for she knew she must look like a crazy woman. If any of the girls were awake, they’d know something was wrong. And no one must ever, ever know that anything had happened. Through the wide bay window on the lawn she could see the men still lounging in their chairs under the trees and in the shade of the arbor. How she envied them! How wonderful to be a man and never have to undergo miseries such as she had just passed through. As she stood watching them, hot eyed and dizzy, she heard the rapid pounding of a horse’s hooves on the front drive, the scattering of gravel and the sound of an excited voice calling a question to one of the negroes. The gravel flew again and across her vision a man on horseback galloped over the green lawn toward the lazy group under the trees. Some late-come guest, but why did he ride his horse across the turf that was India’s pride? She could not recognize him, but as he flung himself from the saddle and clutched John Wilkes’ arm, she could see that there was excitement in every line of him. The crowd swarmed about him, tall glasses and palmetto fans abandoned on tables and on the ground. In spite of the distance, she could hear the hubbub of voices, questioning, calling, feel the fever-pitch tenseness of the men. Then above the confused sounds Stuart Tarleton’s voice rose, in an exultant shout, “Yee-aay-ee!” as if he were on the hunting field. And she heard for the first time, without knowing it, the Rebel yell. As she watched, the four Tarletons followed by the Fontaine boys broke from the group and began hurrying toward the stable, yelling as they ran, “Jeems! You, Jeems! Saddle the horses!” “Somebody’s house must have caught fire,” Scarlett thought. But fire or no fire, her job was to get herself back into the bedroom before she was discovered. Her heart was quieter now and she tiptoed up the steps into the silent hall. A heavy warm somnolence lay over the house, as if it slept at ease like the girls, until night when it would burst into its full beauty with music and candle flames. Carefully, she eased open the door of the dressing room and slipped in. Her hand was behind her, still holding the knob, when Honey Wilkes’ voice, low pitched, almost in a whisper, came to her through the crack of the opposite door leading into the bedroom. “I think Scarlett acted as fast as a girl could act today.” Scarlett felt her heart begin its mad racing again and she clutched her hand against it unconsciously, as if she would squeeze it into submission. “Eavesdroppers often hear highly instructive things,” jibed a memory. Should she slip out again? Or make herself known and embarrass Honey as she deserved? But the next voice made her pause. A team of mules could not have dragged her away when she heard Melanie’s voice. “Oh, Honey, no! Don’t be unkind. She’s just high spirited and vivacious. I thought her most charming.” “Oh,” thought Scarlett, clawing her nails into her basque. ‘To have that mealy-mouthed little mess take up for me!” It was harder to bear than Honey’s out-and-out cattiness. Scarlett had never trusted any woman and had never credited any woman except her mother with motives other than selfish ones. Melanie knew she had Ashley securely, so she could well afford to show such a Christian spirit. Scarlett felt it was just Melanie’s way of parading her conquest and getting credit for being sweet at the same time. Scarlett had frequently used the same trick herself when discussing other girls with men, and it had never failed to convince foolish males of her sweetness and unselfishness. “Well, Miss,” said Honey tartly, her voice rising, “you must be blind.” “Hush, Honey,” hissed the voice of Sally Munroe. “They’ll hear you all over the house!” Honey lowered her voice but went on. “Well, you saw how she was carrying on with every man she could get hold of—even Mr. Kennedy and he’s her own sister’s beau. I never saw the like! And she certainly was going after Charles.” Honey giggled self-consciously. “And you know, Charles and I—” “Are you really?” whispered voices excitedly. “Well, don’t tell anybody, girls—not yet!” There were more gigglings and the bed springs creaked as someone squeezed Honey. Melanie murmured something about how happy she was that Honey would be her sister. “Well, I won’t be happy to have Scarlett for my sister, because she’s a fast piece if ever I saw one,” came the aggrieved voice of Hetty Tarleton. “But she’s as good as engaged to Stuart. Brent says she doesn’t give a rap about him, but, of course, Brent’s crazy about her, too.” “If you should ask me,” said Honey with mysterious importance, “there’s only one person she does give a rap about. And that’s Ashley!” As the whisperings merged together violently, questioning, interrupting, Scarlett felt herself go cold with fear and humiliation. Honey was a fool, a silly, a simpleton about men, but she had a feminine instinct about other women that Scarlett had underestimated. The mortification and hurt pride that she had suffered in the library with Ashley and with Rhett Butler were pin pricks to this. Men could be trusted to keep their mouths shut, even men like Mr. Butler, but with Honey Wilkes giving tongue like a hound in the field, the entire County would know about it before six o’clock. And Gerald had said only last night that he wouldn’t be having the County laughing at his daughter. And how they would all laugh now! Clammy perspiration, starting under her armpits, began to creep down her ribs. Melanie’s voice, measured and peaceful, a little reproving, rose above the others. “Honey, you know that isn’t so. And it’s so unkind.” “It is too, Melly, and if you weren’t always so busy looking for the good in people that haven’t got any good in them, you’d see it. And I’m glad it’s so. It serves her right. All Scarlett O’Hara has ever done has been to stir up trouble and try to get other girls’ beaux. You know mighty well she took Stuart from India and she didn’t want him. And today she tried to take Mr. Kennedy and Ashley and Charles—” “I must get home!” thought Scarlett “I must get home!” If she could only be transferred by magic to Tara and to safety. If she could only be with Ellen, just to see her, to hold onto her skirt, to cry and pour out the whole story in her lap. If she had to listen to another word, she’d rush in and pull out Honey’s straggly pale hair in big handfuls and spit on Melanie Hamilton to show her just what she thought of her charity. But she’d already acted common enough today, enough like white trash—that was where all her trouble lay. She pressed her hands hard against her skirts, so they would not rustle and backed out as stealthily as an animal. Home, she thought, as she sped down the hall, past the closed doors and still rooms, I must go home. She was already on the front porch when a new thought brought her up sharply—she couldn’t go home! She couldn’t run away! She would have to see it through, bear all the malice of the girls and her own humiliation and heartbreak. To run away would only give them more ammunition. She pounded her clenched fist against the tall white pillar beside her, and she wished that she were Samson, so that she could pull down all of Twelve Oaks and destroy every person in it. She’d make them sorry. She’d show them. She didn’t quite see how she’d show them, but she’d do it all the same. She’d hurt them worse than they hurt her. For the moment, Ashley as Ashley was forgotten. He was not the tall drowsy boy she loved but part and parcel of the Wilkeses, Twelve Oaks, the County—and she hated them all because they laughed. Vanity was stronger than love at sixteen and there was no room in her hot heart now for anything but hate. “I won’t go home,” she thought. “I’ll stay here and I’ll make them sorry. And I’ll never tell Mother. No, I’ll never tell anybody.” She braced herself to go back into the house, to reclimb the stairs and go into another bedroom. As she turned, she saw Charles coming into the house from the other end of the long hall. When he saw her, he hurried toward her. His hair was tousled and his face near geranium with excitement. “Do you know what’s happened?” he cried, even before he reached her. “Have you heard? Paul Wilson just rode over from Jonesboro with the news!” He paused, breathless, as he came up to her. She said nothing and only stared at him. “Mr. Lincoln has called for men, soldiers—I mean volunteers—seventy-five thousand of them!” Mr. Lincoln again! Didn’t men ever think about anything that really mattered? Here was this fool expecting her to be excited about Mr. Lincoln’s didoes when her heart was broken and her reputation as good as ruined. Charles stared at her. Her face was paper white and her narrow eyes blazing like emeralds. He had never seen such fire in any girl’s face, such a glow in anyone’s eyes. “I’m so clumsy,” he said. “I should have told you more gently. I forgot how delicate ladies are. I’m sorry I’ve upset you so. You don’t feel faint, do you? Can I get you a glass of water?” “No,” she said, and managed a crooked smile. “Shall we go sit on the bench?” he asked, taking her arm. She nodded and he carefully handed her down the front steps and led her across the grass to the iron bench beneath the largest oak in the front yard. How fragile and tender women are, he thought, the mere mention of war and harshness makes them faint. The idea made him feel very masculine and he was doubly gentle as he seated her. She looked so strangely, and there was a wild beauty about her white face that set his heart leaping. Could it be that she was distressed by the thought that he might go to the war? No, that was too conceited for belief. But why did she look at him so oddly? And why did her hands shake as they fingered her lace handkerchief: And her thick sooty lashes—they were fluttering just like the eyes of girls in romances he had read, fluttering with timidity and love. He cleared his throat three times to speak and failed each time. He dropped his eyes because her own green ones met his so piercingly, almost as if she were not seeing him. “He has a lot of money,” she was thinking swiftly, as a thought and a plan went through her brain. “And he hasn’t any parents to bother me and he lives in Atlanta. And if I married him right away, it would show Ashley that I didn’t care a rap—that I was only flirting with him. And it would just kill Honey. She’d never, never catch another beau and everybody’d laugh fit to die at her. And it would hurt Melanie, because she loves Charles so much. And it would hurt Stu and Brent—” She didn’t quite know why she wanted to hurt them, except that they had catty sisters. “And they’d all be sorry when I came back here to visit in a fine carriage and with lots of pretty clothes and a house of my own. And they would never, never laugh at me.” “Of course, it will mean fighting,” said Charles, after several more embarrassed attempts. “But don’t you fret, Miss Scarlett, it’ll be over in a month and we’ll have them howling. Yes, sir! Howling! I wouldn’t miss it for anything. I’m afraid there won’t be much of a ball tonight, because the Troop is going to meet at Jonesboro. The Tarleton boys have gone to spread the news. I know the ladies will be sorry.” She said, “Oh,” for want of anything better, but it sufficed. Coolness was beginning to come back to her and her mind was collecting itself. A frost lay over all her emotions and she thought that she would never feel anything warmly again. Why not take this pretty, flushed boy? He was as good as anyone else and she didn’t care. No, she could never care about anything again, not if she lived to be ninety. “I can’t decide now whether to go with Mr. Wade Hampton’s South Carolina Legion or with the Atlanta Gate City Guard.” She said, “Oh,” again and their eyes met and the fluttering lashes were his undoing. “Will you wait for me, Miss Scarlett? It—it would be Heaven just knowing that you were waiting for me until after we licked them!” He hung breathless on her words, watching the way her lips curled up at the corners, noting for the first time the shadows about these corners and thinking what it would mean to kiss them. Her hand, with palm clammy with perspiration, slid into his. “I wouldn’t want to wait,” she said and her eyes were veiled. He sat clutching her hand, his mouth wide open. Watching him from under her lashes, Scarlett thought detachedly that he looked like a gigged frog. He stuttered several times, closed his mouth and opened it again, and again became, geranium colored. “Can you possibly love me?” She said nothing but looked down into her lap, and Charles was thrown into new states of ecstasy and embarrassment. Perhaps a man should not ask a girl such a question. Perhaps it would be unmaidenly for her to answer it. Having never possessed the courage to get himself into such a situation before, Charles was at a loss as to how to act. He wanted to shout and to sing and to kiss her and to caper about the lawn and then run tell everyone, black and white, that she loved him. But he only squeezed her hand until he drove her rings into the flesh. “You will marry me soon, Miss Scarlett?” “Um,” she said, fingering a fold of her dress. “Shall we make it a double wedding with Mel—” “No,” she said quickly, her eyes glinting up at him ominously. Charles knew again that he had made an error. Of course, a girl wanted her own wedding—not shared glory. How kind she was to overlook his blunderings. If it were only dark and he had the courage of shadows and could kiss her hand and say the things he longed to say. “When may I speak to your father?” “The sooner the better,” she said, hoping that perhaps he would release the crushing pressure on her rings before she had to ask him to do it. He leaped up and for a moment she thought he was going to cut a caper, before dignity claimed him. He looked down at her radiantly, his whole clean simple heart in his eyes. She had never had anyone look at her thus before and would never have it from any other man, but in her queer detachment she only thought that he looked like a calf. “I’ll go now and find your father,” he said, smiling all over his face. “I can’t wait. Will you excuse me—dear?” The endearment came hard but having said it once, he repeated it again with pleasure. “Yes,” she said. “I’ll wait here. It’s so cool and nice here.” He went off across the lawn and disappeared around the house, and she was alone under the rustling oak. From the stables, men were streaming out on horseback, negro servants riding hard behind their masters. The Munroe boys tore past waving their hats, and the Fontaines and Calverts went down the road yelling. The four Tarletons charged across the lawn by her and Brent shouted: “Mother’s going to give us the horses! Yee-aay-ee!” Turf flew and they were gone, leaving her alone again. The white house reared its tall columns before her, seeming to withdraw with dignified aloofness from her. It would never be her house now. Ashley would never carry her over the threshold as his bride. Oh, Ashley, Ashley! What have I done? Deep in her, under layers of hurt pride and cold practicality, something stirred hurtingly. An adult emotion was being born, stronger than her vanity or her willful selfishness. She loved Ashley and she knew she loved him and she had never cared so much as in that instant when she saw Charles disappearing around the curved graveled walk. |
CHAPTER V IT WAS TEN O’CLOCK in the morning. The day was warm for April and the golden sunlight streamed, brilliantly into Scarlett’s room through the blue curtains of the wide windows. The cream-colored walls glowed with light and the depths of the mahogany furniture gleamed deep red like wine, while the floor glistened as if it were glass, except where the rag rugs covered it and they were spots of gay color. Already summer was in the air, the first hint of Georgia summer when the high tide of spring gives way reluctantly before a fiercer heat. A balmy, soft warmth poured into the room, heavy with velvety smells, redolent of many blossoms, of newly fledged trees and of the moist, freshly turned red earth. Through the window Scarlett could see the bright riot of the twin lanes of daffodils bordering the graveled driveway and the golden masses of yellow jessamine spreading flowery sprangles modestly to the earth like crinolines. The mockingbirds and the jays, engaged in their old feud for possession of the magnolia tree beneath her window, were bickering, the jays strident, acrimonious, the mockers sweet voiced and plaintive. Such a glowing morning usually called Scarlett to the window, to lean arms on the broad sill and drink in the scents and sounds of Tara. But, today she had no eye for sun or azure sky beyond a hasty thought, “Thank God, it isn’t raining.” On the bed lay the apple-green, watered-silk ball dress with its festoons of ecru lace, neatly packed in a large cardboard box. It was ready to be carried to Twelve Oaks to be donned before the dancing began, but Scarlett shrugged at the sight of it. If her plans were successful, she would not wear that dress tonight. Long before the ball began, she and Ashley would be on their way to Jonesboro to be married. The troublesome question was—what dress should she wear to the barbecue? What dress would best set off her charms and make her most irresistible to Ashley? Since eight o’clock she had been trying on and rejecting dresses, and now she stood dejected and irritable in lace pantalets, linen corset cover and three billowing lace and linen petticoats. Discarded garments lay about her on the floor, the bed, the chairs, in bright heaps of color and straying ribbons. The rose organdie with long pink sash was becoming, but she had worn it last summer when Melanie visited Twelve Oaks and she’d be sure to remember it. And might be catty enough to mention it. The black bombazine, with its puffed sleeves and princess lace collar, set off her white skin superbly, but it did make her look a trifle elderly. Scarlett peered anxiously in the mirror at her sixteen-year-old face as if expecting to see wrinkles and sagging chin muscles. It would never do to appear sedate and elderly before Melanie’s sweet youthfulness. The lavender barred muslin was beautiful with those wide insets of lace and net about the hem, but it had never suited her type. It would suit Carreen’s delicate profile and wishy-washy expression perfectly, but Scarlett felt that it made her look like a schoolgirl. It would never do to appear schoolgirlish beside Melanie’s poised self. The green plaid taffeta, frothing with flounces and each flounce edged in green velvet ribbon, was most becoming, in fact her favorite dress, for it darkened her eyes to emerald. But there was unmistakably a grease spot on the front of the basque. Of course, her brooch could be pinned over the spot, but perhaps Melanie had sharp eyes. There remained varicolored cotton dresses which Scarlett felt were not festive enough for the occasion, ball dresses and the green sprigged muslin she had worn yesterday. But it was an afternoon dress. It was not suitable for a barbecue, for it had only tiny puffed sleeves and the neck was low enough for a dancing dress. But there was nothing else to do but wear it. After all she was not ashamed of her neck and arms and bosom, even if it was not correct to show them in the morning. As she stood before the mirror and twisted herself about to get a side view, she thought that there was absolutely nothing about her figure to cause her shame. Her neck was short but rounded and her arms plump and enticing. Her breasts, pushed high by her stays, were very nice breasts. She had never had to sew tiny rows of silk ruffles in the lining of her basques, as most sixteen-year-old girls did, to give their figures the desired curves and fullness. She was glad she had inherited Ellen’s slender white hands and tiny feet, and she wished she had Ellen’s height, too, but her own height pleased her very well. What a pity legs could not be shown, she thought, pulling up her petticoats and regretfully viewing them, plump and neat under pantalets. She had such nice legs. Even the girls at the Fayetteville Academy had admitted as much. And as for her waist—there was no one in Fayetteville, Jonesboro or in three counties, for that matter, who had so small a waist. The thought of her waist brought her back to practical matters. The green muslin measured seventeen inches about the waist, and Mammy had laced her for the eighteen-inch bombazine. Mammy would have to lace her tighter. She pushed open the door, listened and heard Mammy’s heavy tread in the downstairs hall. She shouted for her impatiently, knowing she could raise her voice with impunity, as Ellen was in the smokehouse, measuring out the day’s food to Cookie. “Some folks thinks as how Ah kin fly,” grumbled Mammy, shuffling up the stairs. She entered puffing, with the expression of one who expects battle and welcomes it. In her large black hands was a tray upon which food smoked, two large yams covered with butter, a pile of buckwheat cakes dripping syrup, and a large slice of ham swimming in gravy. Catching sight of Mammy’s burden, Scarlett’s expression changed from one of minor irritation to obstinate belligerency. In the excitement of trying on dresses she had forgotten Mammy’s ironclad rule that, before going to any party, the O’Hara girls must be crammed so full of food at home they would be unable to eat any refreshments at the party. “It’s no use. I won’t eat it. You can just take it back to the kitchen.” Mammy set the tray on the table and squared herself, hands on hips. “Yas’m, you is! Ah ain’ figgerin’ on havin’ happen whut happen at dat las’ barbecue w’en Ah wuz too sick frum dem chittlins Ah et ter fetch you no tray befo’ you went. You is gwine eat eve’y bite of dis.” “I am not! Now, come here and lace me tighter because we are late already. I heard the carriage come round to the front of the house.” Mammy’s tone became wheedling. “Now, Miss Scarlett, you be good an’ come eat jes’a lil. Miss Carreen an’ Miss Suellen done eat all dey’n.” “They would,” said Scarlett contemptuously. “They haven’t any more spirit than a rabbit. But I won’t! I’m through with trays. I’m not forgetting the time I ate a whole tray and went to the Calverts’ and they had ice cream out of ice they’d brought all the way from Savannah, and I couldn’t eat but a spoonful. I’m going to have a good time today and eat as much as I please.” At this defiant heresy, Mammy’s brow lowered with indignation. What a young miss could do and what she could not do were as different as black and white in Mammy’s mind; there was no middle ground of deportment between. Suellen and Carreen were clay in her powerful hands and harkened respectfully to her warning. But it had always been a struggle to teach Scarlett that most of her natural impulses were unladylike. Mammy’s victories over Scarlett were hard-won and represented guile unknown to the white mind. “Ef you doan care ‘bout how folks talks ‘bout dis fambly, Ah does,” she rumbled. “Ah ain’ gwine stand by an’ have eve’ybody at de pahty sayin’ how you ain’ fotched up right. Ah has tole you an’ tole you dat you kin allus tell a lady by dat she eat lak a bird. An’ Ah ain’ aimin’ ter have you go ter Mist’ Wilkes’ an’ eat lak a fe’el han’ an’ gobble lak a hawg.” “Mother is a lady and she eats,” countered Scarlett. “W’en you is mahied, you kin eat, too,” retorted Mammy. “Wen Miss Ellen yo’ age, she never et nuthin’ w’en she went out, an’ needer yo’ Aunt Pauline nor yo’ Aunt Eulalie. An’ dey all done mahied. Young misses whut eats heavy mos’ generly doan never ketch husbands.” “I don’t believe it. At that barbecue when you were sick and I didn’t eat beforehand, Ashley Wilkes told me he liked to see a girl with a healthy appetite.” Mammy shook her head ominously. “Whut gempmums says an’ whut dey thinks is two diffunt things. An’ Ah ain’ noticed Mist’ Ashley axing fer ter mahy you.” Scarlett scowled, started to speak sharply and then caught herself. Mammy had her there and there was no argument. Seeing the obdurate look on Scarlett’s face, Mammy picked up the tray and, with the bland guile of her race, changed her tactics. As she started for the door, she sighed. “Well’m, awright. Ah wuz tellin’ Cookie w’ile she wuz a-fixin’ dis tray, ‘You kin sho tell a lady by whut she doan eat,’ an’ Ah say ter Cookie, ‘Ah ain’ seed no w’ite lady who et less’n Miss Melly Hamilton did las’ time she wuz visitin’ Mist’ Ashley’—Ah means, visitin’ Miss India.” Scarlett shot a look of sharp suspicion at her, but Mammy’s broad face carried only a look of innocence and of regret that Scarlett was not the lady Melanie Hamilton was. “Put down that tray and come lace me tighter,” said Scarlett irritably. “And I’ll try to eat a little afterwards. If I ate now I couldn’t lace tight enough.” Cloaking her triumph, Mammy set down the tray. “Whut mah lamb gwine wear?” “That,” answered Scarlett, pointing at the fluffy mass of green flowered muslin. Instantly Mammy was in arms. “No, you ain’. It ain’ fittin’ fer mawnin’. You kain show yo’ buzzum befo’ three o’clock an’ dat dress ain’ got no neck an’ no sleeves. An’ you’ll git freckled sho as you born, an’ Ah ain’ figgerin’ on you gittin’ freckled affer all de buttermilk Ah been puttin’ on you all dis winter, bleachin’ dem freckles you got at Savannah settin’ on de beach. Ah sho gwine speak ter yo’ Ma ‘bout you.” “If you say one word to her before I’m dressed I won’t eat a bite,’ said Scarlett coolly. “Mother won’t have time to send me back to change once I’m dressed.” Mammy sighed resignedly, beholding herself outguessed. Between the two evils, it was better to have Scarlett wear an afternoon dress at a morning barbecue than to have her gobble like a hog. “Hole onter sumpin’ an’ suck in yo’ breaf,” she commanded. Scarlett obeyed, bracing herself and catching firm hold of one of the bedposts. Mammy pulled and jerked vigorously and, as the tiny circumference of whalebone-girdled waist grew smaller, a proud, fond look came into her eyes. “Ain’ nobody got a wais’ lak mah lamb,” she said approvingly. “Eve’y time Ah pulls Miss Suellen littler dan twenty inches, she up an’ faint.” “Pooh!” gasped Scarlett, speaking with difficulty. “I never fainted in my life.” “Well, ‘twouldn’ do no hahm ef you wuz ter faint now an’ den,” advised Mammy. “You is so brash sometimes, Miss Scarlett. Ah been aimin’ ter tell you, it jes’ doan look good de way you ‘doan faint ‘bout snakes an’ mouses an’ sech. Ah doan mean round home but w’en you is out in comp’ny. An’ Ah has tole you an’—” “Oh, hurry! Don’t talk so much. I’ll catch a husband. See if I don’t, even if I don’t scream and faint. Goodness, but my stays are tight! Put on the dress.” Mammy carefully dropped the twelve yards of green sprigged muslin over the mountainous petticoats and hooked up the back of the tight, low-cut basque. “You keep yo’ shawl on yo’ shoulders w’en you is in de sun, an’ doan you go takin’ off yo’ hat w’en you is wahm,” she commanded. “Elsewise you be comin’ home lookin’ brown lak Ole Miz Slattery. Now, you come eat, honey, but doan eat too fas’. No use havin’ it come right back up agin.” Scarlett obediently sat down before the tray, wondering if she would be able to get any food into her stomach and still have room to breathe. Mammy plucked a large towel from the washstand and carefully tied it around Scarlett’s neck, spreading the white folds over her lap. Scarlett began on the ham, because she liked ham, and forced it down. “I wish to Heaven I was married,” she said resentfully as she attacked the yams with loathing. ‘Tin tired of everlastingly being unnatural and never doing anything I want to do. I’m tired of acting like I don’t eat more than a bird, and walking when I want to run and saying I feel faint after a waltz, when I could dance for two days and never get tired. I’m tired of saying, ‘How wonderful you are!’ to fool men who haven’t got one-half the sense I’ve got, and I’m tired of pretending I don’t know anything, so men can tell me things and feel important while they’re doing it ... I can’t eat another bite.” “Try a hot cake,” said Mammy inexorably. “Why is it a girl has to be so silly to catch a husband?” “Ah specs it’s kase gempmums doan know whut dey wants. Dey jes’ knows whut dey thinks dey wants. An’ givin’ dem whut dey thinks dey wants saves a pile of mizry an’ bein’ a ole maid. An’ dey thinks dey wants mousy lil gals wid bird’s tastes an’ no sense at all. It doan make a gempmum feel lak mahyin’ a lady ef he suspicions she got mo’ sense dan he has.” “Don’t you suppose men get surprised after they’re married to find that their wives do have sense?” “Well, it’s too late den. Dey’s already mahied. ‘Sides, gempmums specs dey wives ter have sense.” “Some day I’m going to do and say everything I want to do and say, and if people don’t like it I don’t care.” “No, you ain’,” said Mammy grimly. “Not while Ah got breaf. You eat dem cakes. Sop dem in de gravy, honey.” “I don’t think Yankee girls have to act like such fools. When we were at Saratoga last year, I noticed plenty of them acting like they had right good sense and in front of men, too.” Mammy snorted. “Yankee gals! Yas’m, Ah guess dey speaks dey minds awright, but Ah ain’ noticed many of dem gittin’ proposed ter at Saratoga.” “But Yankees must get married,” argued Scarlett. “They don’t just grow. They must get married and have children. There’s too many of them.” “Men mahys dem fer dey money,” said Mammy firmly. Scarlett sopped the wheat cake in the gravy and put it in her mouth. Perhaps there was something to what Mammy said. There must be something in it, for Ellen said the same things, in different and more delicate words. In fact, the mothers of all her girl friends impressed on their daughters the necessity of being helpless, clinging, doe-eyed creatures. Really, it took a lot of sense to cultivate and hold such a pose. Perhaps she had been too brash. Occasionally she- had argued with Ashley and frankly aired her opinions. Perhaps this and her healthy enjoyment of walking and riding had turned him from her to the frail Melanie. Perhaps if she changed her tactics— But she felt that if Ashley succumbed to premeditated feminine tricks, she could never respect him as she now did. Any man who was fool enough to fall for a simper, a faint and an “Oh, how wonderful you are!” wasn’t worth having. But they all seemed to like it. If she had used the wrong tactics with Ashley in the past—well, that was the past and done with. Today she would use different ones, the right ones. She wanted him and she had only a few hours in which to get him. If fainting, or pretending to faint, would do the trick, then she would faint. If simpering, coquetry or empty-headedness would attract him, she would gladly play the flirt and be more empty-headed than even Cathleen Calvert. And if bolder measures were necessary, she would take them. Today was the day! There was no one to tell Scarlett that her own personality, frighteningly vital though it was, was more attractive than any masquerade she might adopt. Had she been, told, she would have been pleased but unbelieving. And the civilization of which she was a part would have been unbelieving too, for at no time, before or since, had so low a premium been placed on feminine naturalness. As the carriage bore her down the red road toward the Wilkes plantation, Scarlett had a feeling of guilty pleasure that neither her mother nor Mammy was with the party. There would be no one at the barbecue who, by delicately lifted brows or out-thrust underlip, could interfere with her plan of action. Of course, Suellen would be certain to tell tales tomorrow, but if an went as Scarlett hoped, the excitement of the family over her engagement to Ashley or her elopement would more than overbalance their displeasure. Yes, she was very glad Ellen had been forced to stay at home. Gerald, primed with brandy, had given Jonas Wilkerson his dismissal that morning and Ellen had remained at Tara to go over the accounts of the plantation before he took his departure. Scarlett had kissed her mother good-by in the little office where she sat before the tall secretary with its paper-stuffed pigeonholes. Jonas Wilkerson, hat in hand, stood beside her, his sallow tight-skinned face hardly concealing the fury of hate that possessed him at being so unceremoniously turned out of the best overseer’s job in the County. And all because of a bit of minor philandering. He had told Gerald over and over that Emmie Slattery’s baby might have been fathered by any one of a dozen men as easily as himself—an idea in which Gerald concurred—but that had not altered his case so far as Ellen was concerned. Jonas hated all Southerners. He hated their cool courtesy to him and their contempt for his social status, so inadequately covered by their courtesy. He hated Ellen O’Hara above anyone else, for she was the epitome of all that he hated in Southerners. Mammy, as head woman of the plantation, had remained to help Ellen, and it was Dilcey who rode on the driver’s seat beside Toby, the girls’ dancing dresses in a long box across her lap. Gerald rode beside the carriage on his big hunter, warm with brandy and pleased with himself for having gotten through with the unpleasant business of Wilkerson so speedily. He had shoved the responsibility onto Ellen, and her disappointment at missing the barbecue and the gathering of her friends did not enter his mind; for it was a fine spring day and his fields were beautiful and the birds were singing and he felt too young and frolicsome to think of anyone else. Occasionally he burst out with “Peg in a Low-backed Car” and other Irish ditties or the more lugubrious lament for Robert Emmet, “She is far from the land where her young hero sleeps.” He was happy, pleasantly excited over the prospect of spending the day shouting about the Yankees and the war, and proud of his three pretty daughters in their bright spreading hoop skirts beneath foolish little lace parasols. He gave no thought to his conversation of the day before with Scarlett, for it had completely slipped his mind. He only thought that she was pretty and a great credit to him and that, today, her eyes were as green as the hills of Ireland. The last thought made him think better of himself, for it had a certain poetic ring to it, and so he favored the girls with a loud and slightly off-key rendition of “The Wearin’ o’ the Green.” Scarlett, looking at him with the affectionate contempt that mothers feel for small swaggering sons, knew that he would be very drunk by sundown. Coming home in the dark, he would try, as usual, to jump every fence between Twelve Oaks and Tara and, she hoped, by the mercy of Providence and the good sense of his horse, would escape breaking his neck. He would disdain the bridge and swim his horse through the river and come home roaring, to be put to bed on the sofa in the office by Pork who always waited up with a lamp in the front hall on such occasions. He would ruin his new gray broadcloth suit, which would cause him to swear horribly in the morning and tell Ellen at great length how his horse fell off the bridge in the darkness—a palpable lie which would fool no one but which would be accepted by all and make him feel very clever. Pa is a sweet, selfish, irresponsible darling, Scarlett thought, with a surge of affection for him. She felt so excited and happy this morning that she included the whole world, as well as Gerald, in her affection. She was pretty and she knew it; she would have Ashley for her own before the day was over; the sun was warm and tender and the glory of the Georgia spring was spread before her eyes. Along the roadside the blackberry brambles were concealing with softest green the savage red gulches cut by the winter’s rains, and the bare granite boulders pushing up through the red earth were being draped with sprangles of Cherokee roses and compassed about by wild violets of palest purple hue. Upon the wooded hills above the river, the dogwood blossoms lay glistening and white, as if snow still lingered among the greenery. The flowering crab trees were bursting their buds and rioting from delicate white to deepest pink and, beneath the trees where the sunshine dappled the pine straw, the wild honeysuckle made a varicolored carpet of scarlet and orange and rose. There was a faint wild fragrance of sweet shrub on the breeze and the world smelted good enough to eat. “I’ll remember how beautiful this day is till I die,” thought Scarlett. “Perhaps it will be my wedding day!” And she thought with a tingling in her heart how she and Ashley might ride swiftly through this beauty of blossom and greenery this very afternoon, or tonight by moonlight, toward Jonesboro and a preacher. Of course, she would have to be remarried by a priest from Atlanta, but that would be something for Ellen and Gerald to worry about. She quailed a little as she thought how white with mortification Ellen would be at hearing that her daughter had eloped with another girl’s fiancé, but she knew Ellen would forgive her when she saw her happiness. And Gerald would scold and bawl but, for all his remarks of yesterday about not wanting her to marry Ashley, he would be pleased beyond words at an alliance between his family and the Wilkes. “But that’ll be something to worry about after I’m married,” she thought, tossing the worry from her. It was impossible to feel anything but palpitating joy in this warm sun, in this spring, with the chimneys of Twelve Oaks just beginning to show on the hill across the river. “I’ll live there all my life and I’ll see fifty springs like this and maybe more, and I’ll tell my children and my grandchildren how beautiful this spring was, lovelier than any they’ll ever see.” She was so happy at this thought that she joined in the last chorus of “The Wearin’ o’ the Green” and won Gerald’s shouted approval. “I don’t know why you’re so happy this morning,” said Suellen crossly, for the thought still rankled in her mind that she would look far better in Scarlett’s green silk dancing frock than its rightful owner would. And why was Scarlett always so selfish about lending her clothes and bonnets? And why did Mother always back her up, declaring green was not Suellen’s color? “You know as well as I do that Ashley’s engagement is going to be announced tonight. Pa said so this morning. And I know you’ve been sweet on him for months.” “That’s all you know,” said Scarlett, putting out her tongue and refusing to lose her good humor. How surprised Miss Sue would be by this time tomorrow morning! “Susie, you know that’s not so,” protested Carreen, shocked. “It’s Brent that Scarlett cares about.” Scarlett turned smiling green eyes upon her younger sister, wondering how anyone could be so sweet. The whole family knew that Carreen’s thirteen-year-old heart was set upon Brent Tarleton, who never gave her a thought except as Scarlett’s baby sister. When Ellen was not present, the O’Haras teased her to tears about him. “Darling, I don’t care a thing about Brent,” declared Scarlett, happy enough to be generous. “And he doesn’t care a thing about me. Why, he’s waiting for you to grow up!” Carreen’s round little face became pink, as pleasure struggled with incredulity. “Oh, Scarlett, really?” “Scarlett, you know Mother said Carreen was too young to think about beaux yet, and there you go putting ideas in her head.” “Well, go and tattle and see if I care,” replied Scarlett. “You want to hold Sissy back, because you know she’s going to be prettier than you in a year or so.” “You’ll be keeping civil tongues in your heads this day, or I’ll be taking me crop to you,” warned Gerald. “Now whist! Is it wheels I’m hearing? That’ll be the Tarletons or the Fontaines.” As they neared the intersecting road that came down the thickly wooded hill from Mimosa and Fairhill, the sound of hooves and carriage wheels became plainer and clamorous feminine voices raised in pleasant dispute sounded from behind the screen of trees. Gerald, riding ahead, pulled up his hone and signed to Toby to stop the carriage where the two roads met. “ ‘Tis the Tarleton ladies,” he announced to his daughters, his florid face abeam, for excepting Ellen there was no lady in the County he liked more than the red-haired Mrs. Tarleton. “And ‘tis herself at the reins. Ah, there’s a woman with fine hands for a horse! Feather light and strong as rawhide, and pretty enough to kiss for all that. More’s the pity none of you have such hands,” he added, casting fond but reproving glances at his girls. “With Carreen afraid of the poor beasts and Sue with hands tike sadirons when it comes to reins and you, Puss—” “Well, at any rate I’ve never been thrown,” cried Scarlett indignantly. “And Mrs. Tarleton takes a toss at every hunt.” “And breaks a collar bone like a man,” said Gerald. “No fainting, no fussing. Now, no more of it, for here she comes.” He stood up in his stirrups and took off his hat with a sweep, as the Tarleton carriage, overflowing with girls in bright dresses and parasols and fluttering veils, came into view, with Mrs. Tarleton on the box as Gerald had said. With her four daughters, their mammy and their ball dresses in long cardboard boxes crowding the carriage, there was no room for the coachman. And, besides, Beatrice Tarleton never willingly permitted anyone, black or white, to hold reins when her arms were out of slings. Frail, fine-boned, so white of skin that her flaming hair seemed to have drawn all the color from her face into its vital burnished mass, she was nevertheless possessed of exuberant health and untiring energy. She had borne eight children, as red of hair and as full of life as she, and had raised them most successfully, so the County said, because she gave them all the loving neglect and the stem discipline she gave the colts she bred. “Curb them but don’t break their spirits,” was Mrs. Tarleton’s motto. She loved horses and talked horses constantly. She understood them and handled them better than any man in the County. Colts overflowed the paddock onto the front lawn, even as her eight children overflowed the rambling house on the hill, and colts and sons and daughters and hunting dogs tagged after her as she went about the plantation. She credited her horses, especially her red mare, Nellie, with human intelligence; and if the cares of the house kept her busy beyond the time when she expected to take her daily ride, she put the sugar bowl in the hands of some small pickaninny and said: “Give Nellie a handful and tell her I’ll be out terrectly.” Except on rare occasions she always wore her riding habit, for whether she rode or not she always expected to ride and in that expectation put on her habit upon arising. Each morning, rain or shine, Nellie was saddled and walked up and down in front of the house, waiting for the time when Mrs. Tarleton could spare an hour away from her duties. But Fairhill was a difficult plantation to manage and spare time hard to get, and more often than not Nellie walked up and down riderless hour after hour, while Beatrice Tarleton went through the day with the skirt of her habit absently looped over her arm and six inches of shining boot showing below it. Today, dressed in dull black silk over unfashionably narrow hoops, she still looked as though in her habit, for the dress was as severely tailored as her riding costume and the small black hat with Ha long black plume perched over one warm, twinkling, brown eye was a replica of the battered old hat she used for hunting. She waved her whip when she saw Gerald and drew her dancing pair of red horses to a halt, and the four girls in the back of the carriage leaned out and gave such vociferous cries of greeting that the team pranced in alarm. To a casual observer it would seem that years had passed since the Tarletons had seen the O’Haras, instead of only two days. But they were a sociable family and liked their neighbors, especially the O’Hara girls. That is, they liked Suellen and Carreen. No girl in the County, with the possible exception of the empty-headed Cathleen Calvert, really liked Scarlett. In summers, the County averaged a barbecue and ball nearly every week, but to the red-haired Tarletons with their enormous capacity for enjoying themselves, each barbecue and each ball was as exciting as if it were the fast they had ever attended. They were a pretty, buxom quartette, so crammed into the carriage that their hoops and flounces overlapped and their parasols nudged and bumped together above their wide leghorn sun hats, crowned with roses and dangling with black velvet chin ribbons. All shades of red hair were represented beneath these hats, Hetty’s plain red hair, Camilla’s strawberry blonde, Randa’s coppery auburn and small Betsy’s carrot top. “That’s a fine bevy. Ma’m,” said Gerald gallantly, reining his horse alongside the carriage. “But it’s far they’ll go to beat their mother.” Mrs. Tarleton rolled her red-brown eyes and sucked in her tower lip in burlesqued appreciation, and the girls cried, “Ma, stop making, eyes or well tell Pa!” “I vow, Mr. O’Hara, she never gives us a chance when there’s a handsome man like you around!” Scarlett laughed with the rest at these sallies but, as always, the freedom with which the Tarletons treated their mother came as a shock. They acted as if she were one of themselves and not a day over sixteen. To Scarlett, the very idea of saying such things to her own mother was almost sacrilegious. And yet—and yet—there was something very pleasant about the Tarleton girls’ relations with their mother, and they adored her for all that they criticized and scolded and teased her. Not, Scarlett loyally hastened to tell herself, that she would prefer a mother like Mrs. Tarleton to Ellen, but still it would be fun to romp with a mother. She knew that even that thought was disrespectful to Ellen and felt ashamed of it. She knew no such troublesome thoughts ever disturbed the brains under the four flaming thatches in the carriage and, as always when she felt herself different from her neighbors, an irritated confusion fell upon her. Quick though her brain was, it was not made for analysis, but she half-consciously realized that, for all the Tarleton girls were as unruly as colts and wild as March hares, there was an unworried single-mindedness about them that was part of their inheritance. On both their mother’s and their father’s side they were Georgians, north Georgians, only a generation away from pioneers. They were sure of themselves and of their environment. They knew instinctively what they were about, as did the Wilkeses, though in widely divergent ways, and in them there was no such conflict as frequently raged in Scarlett’s bosom where the blood of a soft-voiced, overbred Coast aristocrat mingled with the shrewd, earthy blood of an Irish peasant. Scarlett wanted to respect and adore her mother like an idol and to rumple her hair and tease her too. And she knew she should be altogether one way or the other. It was the same conflicting emotion that made her desire to appear a delicate and high-bred lady with boys and to be, as well, a hoyden who was not above a few kisses. “Where’s Ellen this morning?” asked Mrs. Tarleton. “She’s after discharging our overseer and stayed home to go over the accounts with him. Where’s himself and the lads?” “Oh, they rode over to Twelve Oaks hours ago—to sample the punch and see if it was strong enough, I dare say, as if they wouldn’t have from now till tomorrow morning to do it! I’m going to ask John Wilkes to keep them overnight, even if he has to bed them down in the stable. Five men in their cups are just too much for me. Up to three, I do very well but—” Gerald hastily interrupted to change the subject He could feel his own daughters snickering behind his back as they remembered in what condition he had come home from the Wilkeses’ last barbecue the autumn before. “And why aren’t you riding today, Mrs. Tarleton? Sure, you don’t look yourself at all without Nellie. It’s a stentor, you are.” “A stentor, me ignorant broth of a boy!” cried Mrs. Tarleton, aping his brogue. “You mean a centaur. Stentor was a man with a voice like a brass gong.” “Stentor or centaur, ‘tis no matter,” answered Gerald, unruffled by his error. “And ‘tis a voice like brass you have, Ma’m, when you’re urging on the hounds, so it is.” “That’s one on you, Ma,” said Hetty. “I told you you yelled like a Comanche whenever you saw a fox.” “But not as loud as you yell when Mammy washes your ears,” returned Mrs. Tarleton. “And you sixteen! Well, as to why I’m not riding today, Nellie foaled early this morning.” “Did she now!” cried Gerald with real interest, his Irishman’s passion for horses shining in his eyes, and Scarlett again felt the sense of shock in comparing her mother with Mrs. Tarleton. To Ellen, mares never foaled nor cows calved. In fact, hens almost didn’t lay eggs. Ellen ignored these matters, completely. But Mrs. Tarleton had no such reticences. “A little filly, was it?” “No, a fine little stallion with legs two yards long. You must ride over and see him, Mr. O’Hara. He’s a real Tarleton horse. He’s as red as Hetty’s curls.” “And looks a lot like Hetty, too,” said Camilla, and then disappeared shrieking amid a welter of skirts and pantalets and bobbing hats, as Hetty, who did have a long face, began pinching her. “My fillies are feeling their oats this morning,” said Mrs. Tarleton. “They’ve been kicking up their heels ever since we heard the news this morning about Ashley and that little cousin of his from Atlanta. What’s her name? Melanie? Bless the child, she’s a sweet little thing, but I can never remember either her name or her face. Our cook is the broad wife of the Wilkes butler, and he was over last night with the news that the engagement would be announced tonight and Cookie told us this morning. The girls are all excited about it, though I can’t see why. Everybody’s known for years that Ashley would marry her, that is, if he didn’t marry one of his Burr cousins from Macon. Just like Honey Wilkes is going to marry Melanie’s brother, Charles. Now, tell me, Mr. O’Hara, is it illegal for the Wilkes to marry outside of their family? Because if—” Scarlett did not hear the rest of the laughing words. For one short instant, it was as though the sun had ducked behind a cool cloud, leaving the world in shadow, taking the color out of things. The freshly green foliage looked sickly, the dogwood pallid, and the flowering crab, so beautifully pink a moment ago, faded and dreary. Scarlett dug her fingers into the upholstery of the carriage and for a moment her parasol wavered. It was one thing to know that Ashley was engaged but it was another to hear people talk about it so casually. Then her courage flowed strongly back and the sun came out again and the landscape glowed anew. She knew Ashley loved her. That was certain. And she smiled as she thought how surprised Mrs. Tarleton would be when no engagement was announced that night—how surprised if there were an elopement. And she’d tell neighbors what a sly boots Scarlett was to sit there and listen to her talk about Melanie when all the time she and Ashley—She dimpled at her own thoughts and Hetty, who had been watching sharply the effect of her mother’s words, sank back with a small puzzled frown. “I don’t care what you say, Mr. O’Hara,” Mrs. Tarleton was saying emphatically. “It’s all wrong, this marrying of cousins. It’s bad enough for Ashley to be marrying the Hamilton child, but for Honey to be marrying that pale-looking Charles Hamilton—” “Honey’ll never catch anybody else if she doesn’t marry Charlie,” said Randa, cruel and secure in her own popularity. “She’s never had another beau except him. And he’s never acted very sweet on her, for all that they’re engaged. Scarlett, you remember how he ran after you last Christmas—” “Don’t be a cat, Miss,” said her mother. “Cousins shouldn’t marry, even second cousins. It weakens the strain. It isn’t like horses. You can breed a mare to a brother or a sire to a daughter and get good results if you know your blood strains, but in people it just doesn’t work. You get good lines, perhaps, but no stamina. You—” “Now, Ma’m, I’m taking issue with you on that! Can you name me better people than the Wilkes? And they’ve been intermarrying since Brian Boru was a boy.” “And high time they stopped it, for it’s beginning to show. Oh, not Ashley so much, for he’s a good-looking devil, though even he— But look at those two washed-out-looking Wilkes girls, poor things! Nice girls, of course, but washed out And look at little Miss Melanie. Thin as a rail and delicate enough for the wind to blow away and no spirit at all. Not a notion of her own. ‘No, Ma’m!’ ‘Yes, Ma’m!’ That’s all she has to say. You see what I mean? That family needs new blood, fine vigorous blood like my red heads or your Scarlett. Now, don’t misunderstand me. The Wilkes are fine folks in their way, and you know I’m fond of them all, but be frank! They are overbred and inbred too, aren’t they? They’ll do fine on a dry track, a fast track, but mark my words, I don’t believe the Wilkes can run on a mud track. I believe the stamina has been bred out of them, and when the emergency arises I don’t believe they can run against odds. Dry-weather stock. Give me a big horse who can run in any weather! And their intermarrying has made them different from other folks around here. Always fiddling with the piano or sticking their heads in a book. I do believe Ashley would rather read than hunt! Yes, I honestly believe that, Mr. O’Hara! And just look at the bones on them. Too slender. They need dams and sires with strength—” “Ah-ah-hum,” said Gerald, suddenly and guiltily aware that the conversation, a most interesting and entirely proper one to him, would seem quite otherwise to Ellen. In fact, he knew she would never recover should she learn that her daughters had been exposed to so frank a conversation. But Mrs. Tarleton was, as usual, deaf to all other ideas when pursuing her favorite topic, breeding, whether it be horses or humans. “I know what I’m talking about because I had some cousins who married each other and I give you my word their children all turned out as popeyed as bullfrogs, poor things. And when my family wanted me to marry a second cousin, I bucked like a colt. I said, ‘No, Ma. Not for me. My children will all have spavins and heaves.’ Well, Ma fainted when I said that about spavins, but I stood firm and Grandma backed me up. She knew a lot about horse breeding too, you see, and said I was right. And she helped me run away with Mr. Tarleton. And look at my children! Big and healthy and not a sickly one or a runt among them, though Boyd is only five feet ten. Now, the Wilkes—” “Not meaning to change the subject, Ma’m,” broke in Gerald hurriedly, for he had noticed Carreen’s bewildered look and the avid curiosity on Suellen’s face and feared lest they might ask Ellen embarrassing questions which would reveal how inadequate a chaperon he was. Puss, he was glad to notice, appeared to be thinking of other matters as a lady should. Hetty Tarleton rescued him from his predicament. “Good Heavens, Ma, do let’s get on!” she cried impatiently. “This sun is broiling me and I can just hear freckles popping out on my neck.” “Just a minute, Ma’m, before you go,” said Gerald. “But what have you decided to do about selling us the horses for the Troop? War may break any day now and the boys want the matter settled. It’s a Clayton County troop and it’s Clayton County horses we want for them. But you, obstinate creature that you are, are still refusing to sell us your fine beasts.” “Maybe there won’t be any war,” Mrs. Tarleton temporized, her mind diverted completely from the Wilkeses’ odd marriage habits. “Why, Ma’m, you can’t—” “Ma,” Hetty interrupted again, “can’t you and Mr. O’Hara talk about the horses at Twelve Oaks as well as here?” “That’s just it, Miss Hetty,” said Gerald, “And I won’t be keeping you but one minute by the clock. We’ll be getting to Twelve Oaks in a little bit, and every man there, old and young, wanting to know about the horses. Ah, but it’s breaking me heart to see such a fine pretty lady as your mother so stingy with her beasts! Now, where’s your patriotism, Mrs. Tarleton? Does the Confederacy mean nothing to you at all?” “Ma,” cried small Betsy, “Randa’s sitting on my dress and I’m getting all wrinkled.” “Well, push Randa off you, Betsy, and hush. Now, listen to me, Gerald O’Hara,” she retorted, her eyes beginning to snap. “Don’t you go throwing the Confederacy in my face! I reckon the Confederacy means as much to me as it does to you, me with four boys in the Troop and you with none. But my boys can take care of themselves and my horses can’t. I’d gladly give the horses free of charge if I knew they were going to be ridden by boys I know, gentlemen used to thoroughbreds. No, I wouldn’t hesitate a minute. But let my beauties be at the mercy of backwoodsmen and Crackers who are used to riding mules! No, sir! I’d have nightmares thinking they were being ridden with saddle galls and not groomed properly. Do you think I’d let ignorant fools ride my tender-mouthed darlings and saw their mouths to pieces and beat them till their spirits were broken? Why, I’ve got goose flesh this minute, just thinking about it! No, Mr. O’Hara, you’re mighty nice to want my horses, but you’d better go to Atlanta and buy some old plugs for your clodhoppers. They’ll never know the difference.” “Ma, can’t we please go on?” asked Camilla, joining the impatient chorus. “You know mighty well you’re going to end up giving them your darlings anyhow. When Pa and the boys get through talking about the Confederacy needing them and so on, you’ll cry and let them go.” Mrs. Tarleton grinned and shook the lines. “I’ll do no such thing,” she said, touching the horses lightly with the whip. The carriage went off swiftly. “That’s a fine woman,” said Gerald, putting on his hat and taking his place beside his own carriage. “Drive on, Toby. We’ll wear her down and get the horses yet. Of course, she’s right. She’s right. If a man’s not a gentleman, he’s no business on a horse. The infantry is the place for him. But more’s the pity, there’s not enough planters’ sons in this County to make up a full troop. What did you say, Puss?” “Pa, please ride behind us or in front of us. You kick up such a heap of dust that we’re choking,” said Scarlett, who felt that she could endure conversation no longer. It distracted her from her thoughts and she was very anxious to arrange both her thoughts and her face in attractive lines before reaching Twelve Oaks. Gerald obediently put spurs to his horse and was off in a red cloud after the Tarleton carriage where he could continue his horsy conversation. 第五章 早晨十点。那是暖和的四月天,金色的阳光穿过宽大的窗户上的天蓝色帷帘灿烂地照入思嘉的房间,使那些奶油色墙壁都闪闪发亮,桃花心木家具也泛出葡萄酒一般深红的光辉,地板也像玻璃似的耀眼,让连沿着旧地毯的地方也洒满了灰色光点。 空气里已经有点夏天的感觉,佐治亚初夏的来临了,春季的高潮恋恋不舍地让给比较炎热的气候了。芬芳柔和的暖意已注满房间,它饱含着种种花卉、刚抽枝叶的树木和润温的新翻红土的香味。从窗口思嘉能看到沿着石子车道和两行水仙花和一丛丛像花裙子般纷披满地的黄茉莉在那里竞相怒放,争奇斗妍。模仿鸟和啊鸟为争夺她窗下的一棵山茱萸又打了起来,在那里斗嘴,啊鸟的声音尖锐而昂扬,模仿鸟则娇柔而凄婉。 这般明朗的早晨常常总会把思嘉引到窗口,倚在窗棂上领略塔拉农场的花香鸟语。可是今天早晨她无暇欣赏旭日和蓝天,心头只有一个想法匆匆掠过:“谢谢老天爷,总算没有下雨。"她床上一个匣子里放着一件苹果绿的镶着淡褐色边的纹绸舞衣,折叠得整整嬷嬷。这是准备带到“十二橡树”村去,等舞会开场时穿的,但是思嘉一起见它便不由得耸了耸肩膀。如果她的计划成功,今晚她就用不着穿这件衣裳了。等不到舞会开始,她和艾希礼早就启程到琼斯博罗结婚去了。这是现在的麻烦----她穿什么衣裳参加野宴呢? 什么样的衣裳使她窈窕的身材更显得更为动人和最使艾希礼倾倒呢?从八点钟开始她一直在试衣裳,试一件丢一件,此刻又灰心又恼火,穿着镶边的宽松内裤,紧身布褡和三条波浪式的镶边布衬裙站在那里。那些被她舍弃的衣服成堆地丢在地板上、床上、椅子上,五彩缤纷,一起凌乱。 配有粉红长饰带的那件玫瑰红薄棉布衣裳很合身,可是去年夏天媚兰去“十二橡树”村时已经穿过了,她一定还记得的,也许还会提起呢。那件泡泡袖、花边领的黑羽缎衣裳同她白皙的皮肤十分相称,不过她穿在自上显得老成了一点。 思嘉瞅着她那16岁的面容,好像生怕看到皱纹和松驰的下巴肉似的。可千万不能在媚兰那娇嫩的姿色前显得稳重和老气呀!那件淡紫色的条纹细棉面的,配上宽宽的镶边和网缘,倒是十分漂亮,可是这对她的身段很不合适。它最好配卡琳那种纤细的身材和淡漠的容貌,可思嘉觉得要是她穿起来便个女学生了。在媚兰那泰然自若的姿态旁边,显得学生气可绝对不行呀!还有一件绿方格丝纹绸的,饰着荷叶边,每条荷叶边都镶入一根绿色鹅绒带子,这是最适合的,事实上是她最中意的一件衣裳,因为它能叫她的眼睛显得黑一点,像绿宝石似的,只可惜紧身上衣的胸口部分有块显而易见的油渍。 当然,她可以把别针别在那上面,但眼尖的媚兰,可能会看出来。如今只剩下几件杂色棉布的了,思嘉觉得这些都不够鲜丽,不适宜在野宴上穿。此外便是些舞衣和她昨天穿过的那件绿衣布衫了。但这件花布衫是下午穿的衣服,不好在上午的野宴上派用场,因为它只有小小的泡袖,领口低得像牛舞衣呢。可是,除了这件外,就再也没有别的好穿了。即使在上午穿这种袒胸露臂的衣服不怎么合适,但她并不怕将自己的脖子、臂膀和胸脯露出来。 站在镜前她扭着身子端详自己的身影,心想实在看不出浑身上下有何值得惋惜之处。她的脖子短,但浑圆可爱;两臂丰腴,也很动人。她的两个乳房被紧身褡撑得隆然突起,非常可爱。她从来不用像大多数16岁的姑娘们那样,在胸衣的衬里中缝上小排小排的丝棉来使乳房显得更加丰满和曲线分明。她很高兴自己继承了爱伦那纤细白嫩的双手和小巧玲珑的双足,并且希望还能长到爱伦那样的身高,不过目前的高度已叫她很满意了。不能把腿显露出来,多可惜,她想着,一面提起衬裙遗憾地打量宽松内裤里那双丰腴而白净的腿。她天生有这样两条腿呀!甚至连费耶特维尔学院的姑娘们也那样羡慕呢!至于谈到她的腰肢,在费耶特维尔,琼斯博罗,或者所有三个县里,谁也没有她这样纤腰袅袅,令人着迷呢! 想到腰肢,她就又回到实际问题上来了。那件绿花布衫的腰围是17英寸,但嬷嬷却按照那析羽缎衣服把她的腰身作为18英寸来束了。嬷嬷本应该她束得更紧紧的。她推开门一听,嬷嬷沉重的脚步声在楼下穿堂里轰轰震响,便连忙高声喊她,因为她知道这时爱伦正在薰腊间给厨子分配当天的食物,即使放声也不碍事。 “有人以为俺会飞呢,"嬷嬷抱怨着爬上楼来。她撅着跟走进屋里,那表情像是巴不得要跟谁打架似的。她那双又大又黑的手里端着个托盘,上面放着热气腾腾的食物,那是两只涂满黄油的大山芋、一摞淌着糖浆的荞麦面饼和一大片泡在肉汤里的火腿。一看见嬷嬷手上的东西,思嘉那颇为恼火的神气便立即变得非要大干一仗不可了。她当时正忙着试衣裳,忘记了嬷嬷的铁硬规矩,即奥哈拉家的女孩子动身去赴宴会之前,必须先在家里把肚子填得满满的,这样她们在宴会上就吃不下什么了。 “我不吃,这没有用。你索性它拿回厨房去吧。"嬷嬷把托盘放到桌上,然后两手叉腰,摆出一副架势。 “你就得吃,前次野宴上发生的那种事俺不想再看见了。 那次俺吃了猪肠子病得厉害,没在你们出发前拿吃的来。今番你可得给俺全吃下去。” “我不要吃嘛!过来,快给我把腰扎得更紧一点,咱们眼看已经晚了。我听见马车都走到前门来了。"嬷嬷的口气像是在哄孩子了。 “那么,思嘉小姐,就吃,听俺的话,一点点吧。卡琳小姐和苏伦小姐可全都吃了。” “她们要吃就吃去,"思嘉不屑地说。"她们像只兔子一点骨片也没有,可我不行!我再也不吃这种打垫的东西了。我没有忘记那次到卡尔弗特家去之前吃了一整盘,谁知他们家有冰淇琳,还是用从萨凡纳带来的冰做的,结果我只吃了一勺,我今天可要好好享受一番,高兴吃多少就吃多少。"听了这番不伦不类的犟话,嬷嬷烦恼得皱紧了眉头。在嬷嬷心目中,一个年轻姑娘该做什么和不该做什么,那是黑白分明的两个方面,中间没有可以通融的余地。苏伦和卡琳是她手中的两团熟泥,任凭她强劲的双手随意搓捏,对于她的告诫也总是侧耳恭听。可是要开导思嘉,指出她那感情用事的做法大都有违上流衬会的风习,那就会引起一场争斗。 嬷嬷对思嘉的每次胜利都是好不容易才赢得的,这中间还得归功于一种白人所不知道的狡狯心计。 “即使你并不在乎人们怎样谈论这个家庭,但俺还在乎呢,"她嘟囔着。"俺不想站在一旁,让宴会上的每个人都说你那么没有家教。俺一次又一次告诉过你,你只要看见某人吃东西像小雀子那样斯斯文文的,你就能断定她是个上等人。 可俺不打算叫你到威尔克斯先生家去,在那儿粗鲁地猛吃猛喝,馋得像只老鹰。”“母亲是上等人,但她照样吃呢。"思嘉表示反对。 “等你嫁了人,你也可以吃,”嬷嬷辩驳说。"爱伦在你这个年龄,从来在外面不吃东西,你波琳姨妈和尤拉莉姨妈也不吃。现在她们都嫁人了。凡是馋嘴的年轻姑娘们,大都找不到男人。”“我就不信。在你生病时举行的那次野宴上,我事先并没有吃东西,艾希礼·威尔克斯还告诉我,看见一个姑娘胃口好他很高兴呢。 嬷嬷不祥地摇着头。 “男人家嘴里说和心里想的是两回事。俺看不出艾希礼先生有多大的意思要娶你。"思嘉顿时皱起眉头,眼看要发作了,但随即克制住自己。 在这一点上打中了她,没有什么好辩驳的了。嬷嬷看见思嘉一脸的不服气,嬷嬷便端起托盘,用一种出自本能的温和而狡狯的方式改变了策略。她边叹息边向门口走去。 “好吧。刚才厨娘装这盘了时俺就跟她说了,'一个女孩子是不是上等人,看她吃什么就知道。'俺又对她说,俺还没有见一个白人小姐比媚兰小姐吃的更少的呢,像她一次去看艾希礼先生----俺的意思是去看英迪亚小姐时那样。"思嘉用十分怀疑的眼光瞪了她一眼,可是嬷嬷那张宽脸上只流露出天真而惋惜的神情,似乎在惋惜思嘉不知媚兰·汉密尔顿那样像个大家闺秀。 “把盘子放下,过来替我把腰扎紧点儿,"思嘉很不耐烦地说。"我想过会儿再吃一点。要是现在就吃,那就扎不紧了。"嬷嬷掩饰着得意之情,立刻放下盘子。 “俺的小宝贝儿打算穿哪一件呀?” “那件,"思嘉答道,一面指着那团蓬乱的绿布花。这时嬷嬷立即起来反对了。 “你不能穿,不行。那不是早晨的衣服。你不到下午三点不能露出胸口,况且那件衣服既没领,也没袖。你要是穿上,皮肤上就会出斑点,好像生来就这样似的。去年你在萨凡纳海滩上出了那些斑点,俺整个冬天都在用奶油擦呢。如今俺可不想再让你出了。你要穿,俺就告诉你妈去。”“要是你在我穿好衣裳之前去对她说一句半句,我就一口也不吃你的了,” 思嘉冷冷地说。"要是我已经穿好了,妈就来不及叫我再回来换呢。"嬷嬷发现自己输在算计上了,只好通融地叹了口气。比较起来,与其让思嘉到野宴上去狼吞虎咽,还不如任凭她在早上穿起下午的衣裳来算了。 “给我紧紧抓住个什么,使劲儿往里吸气,"她命令道。 思嘉照她的吩咐,紧紧抓住一根床柱,站稳了身子。嬷嬷狠狠地使劲拉着,抽着,直到束着鲸须带的小小的腰围收得更小了,她眼睛里才露出骄傲而喜悦的神色。 “谁也没有俺小宝贝儿这样的腰身,"她赞赏地说。"每回俺给苏伦小姐扎到20英寸以下,她就要晕过去了。”“呸!"思嘉喘着气,同时带着轻蔑的神气说,”我这一辈子可还从未晕过呢。”“唔,偶尔晕那么几回也不碍事,"嬷嬷告诉她。”你有时候太性急了,思嘉小姐。俺几次对你说,你见了蛇和耗子也不晕,那样子并不体面。当然,俺不是说在你家里,而是说在外边大伙面前,俺还跟你说过----”“唔,快!别说这么多废话了。我会抓到男人的。我就是不嚷嚷也不昏倒,看我能不能抓到。天啊,我的胸褡太紧了! 快穿上衣裳吧。” 嬷嬷小心地把那件12码细纱布做的绿花裙子加在小山似的衬裙上,然后把低领胸衣的后背钩上。 “在太阳底下你要把披巾披在肩上,热了也不要把帽子摘下来,"她吩咐说。”不然,你回家时就果得像老斯莱特里小姐一样黑了。现在来吃罢,亲爱的,可别吃得太急,要是吃了马上吐出来,那可不行埃"思嘉听话地面对托盘坐下来,要是再塞进去一点东西不知自己肚子还能不能呼吸空气。嬷嬷从盥洗架上摘下一条大毛巾,小心地将它的一端系在思嘉脖子上。另一端盖住她的膝头。思嘉从那片火腿开始,因为她喜欢吃火腿,但也只能勉强咽下去。 “我真恨不得早就结婚了,"她反悔似地说,一面厌烦地吃着山芋。"我再也忍受不了这样无休止地的勉强自己,永远不能赁自己高兴做事。在自己很想吃东西时期装得小雀子那样只能吃一点点,真是太腻烦了。在自己想跑时期要慢慢地走,在自己能够连跳两天也不觉得累时期要装得跳完一场华尔兹就晕倒了,这真叫人腻烦透了!我再也不想说'您真了不起呀!'来愚弄那些比我还无知得多的男人;再也不假装自己什么都不懂,让男人们对我讲些什么,而且感到自命不凡……我实在不能再吃了。”“试试吃个热饼,"嬷嬷好像求她似的。 “一个女孩子要找男人为什么就该装得那么傻呀?”“俺想,那是因为他们男人都有自己的主张。他们都知道自己要哪样的人,只要你给了他们想要的东西,你就省掉了一大堆苦恼,也省得一辈子当处女。他们想要的是耗子般的小姑娘,胃口小得像雀子,一点儿见识也没有。要如果一位先生怀疑你比他更有见识,他就不乐意同你这位大家小姐结婚了。”“要是男人们结婚之后发现他们的太太是有见识的,你以为他们会感到惊奇吗?”“是呀,可那就晚了。他们已经结婚了。况且先生们总是提防着他们的老婆会有见识。”“到时候我可偏要照我所想做的去做,说我所想说的话,不管人家怎样不喜欢我。”“不行,你不能这样,” 嬷嬷担忧地说。"只要俺还有一口气,就不许你这样。现在吃饼吧。泡着肉汤吃,亲爱的。”“我看北方佬姑娘用不着做这种傻瓜。我们去年在萨拉托加时,我注意到她们有许多人在男人面前也显得很有见识似的。"嬷嬷轻蔑地一笑。 “北方佬姑娘嘛!当然,俺看她们想啥说啥,不过俺没见她们哪几个在萨拉托加人向她们求婚的。”“可是北方佬也得结婚呀,"思嘉争辩说。"她们并非长大就行了。她们也要结婚,生孩子。她们的孩子多着呢。”“是为了钱男人家才娶她们的,"嬷嬷断然说。 思嘉把烤饼放在肉汤里泡了泡,再拿起来吃。也许嬷嬷说的有些道理吧,一定有点道理,因为爱伦也说过同样的话,不过说法不大一样,也更委婉一些。实际上,她那些女友的母亲全都教给自己的女儿必须做那种不能自立的、依恋别人的、小牝兔般怯生生的可怜虫。其实,要养成和保持这个模样,也需要不少的知识。也许她是太鲁莽了。她常见艾希礼争论,坦白地说出自己的意见。她许就是这种态度和她喜欢散步骑马的有益于健康的习惯,使艾希礼害怕同她接近而转向娇弱的媚兰那边去了。也许,要是她变换一下策略----可是她觉得,如果艾希礼意屈服于这种预先策划好的女人手段,她就再也不能像现在这样敬佩他了。任何一个男人,只要他愚蠢到了居然为一个假笑、一次晕倒和一声"你真了不起呀"所诱惑,便是不值得要的人。可是好像他们全都喜欢这一套呢。 如果她以前对艾希礼也采用了这种错误的策略----当然,算了,这已经是过去的事。如今她要采取不同的手法,正当的手法。她需要他,并且只有几个小时可以用来争取他了。 如果晕倒,或者说假装晕倒,便能达到目的,那就晕倒了,如果微笑,卖弄内情,或者装傻,就能够把他引诱过来,她倒是乐意去调一番情,也高兴装得甚至比凯瑟琳·卡尔弗特更傻。如果需要更加大胆的办法呢?她也乐意采用。总之,成败在此一举了! 谁也不会告诉思嘉,说她自己的个性尽管有可怕的致命弱点,可是跟她所能采用的任何伪装相比,仍然更有吸引力。 如果有人这样告诉她,她会感到高兴但同时不会相信的。而且那个她本人现在所处的这个文明世界也同样不会相信,因为与以前或以后无论什么时候比起来,这种文明对于女性天然的评价都是最低的了。 马车载着她在红土大路上同威尔克斯农场驰去,此时思嘉心里暗暗感到高兴,因为母亲和嬷嬷都不跟他们一起去。这样,在野宴上便没有人耸着眉头或撅着下嘴唇来干涉她的行动计划了。当然,明天苏伦一定会向她们描述的,不过要是一切都按思嘉所希望的进行,那么她家里因她与艾希礼订婚或私奔而引起的激动,就抵消他们的不快而有余了。是的,她很庆幸爱伦被迫留在家里。 早晨杰拉尔德喝了几杯白兰地,借兴把乔纳斯·威尔克森开除了,于是爱伦便在威尔克森离开之前留在塔拉农场检查账目。当她坐在小办事房里那个高高的写字台前忙着时,思嘉进去与她吻别,乔纳·威尔克森拿着帽子站在爱伦身旁,他那绷紧的黄面孔上流露着无法掩饰的又气又恨的神情,因为他觉得自己被这样无礼地从一个全区最好的监工位置撵走,实在难以忍受。何况这只是区区一桩风流韵事所引起的呢。他已经一而再、再而三地告诉杰拉尔德,对于埃米·斯莱特里的娃娃,有嫌疑认用父亲的不下十来个,当然也极可能包括他本人在内。杰拉尔德,对这个看法表示同意,至于爱伦,她却认为他的案情并不能因此有所改变。乔纳斯恨所有的南方人。他恨他们对他态度冷淡并轻视他的社会地位,尽管表面敷衍也是掩盖不了的。他最恨爱伦·奥哈拉,因为她是他所恨的那些南方人的典型。 嬷嬷作为农场女工头留下来协助爱伦,所以只派了迪尔茜跟来,她被安排坐在托比旁边的赶车人座位上,她膝上搁着那个装有姑娘的舞衣的长匣子。杰拉尔德跨着那匹大猎马在车旁缓缓地走着,他的酒兴尚未消散,同时由于迅速处理完了威尔克森那桩不愉快的事,正在自鸣得意。他把责任推到爱伦身上,根本没想到爱伦因错过野宴和朋友欢聚的良机会感到多么失望;在这个春日良辰,他的田地显得那样美丽,鸟儿又歌唱得那样动听,他自己也觉得那样年轻好玩,便再不想别的了。有几回他忽然哼起了《矮背马车上的佩格》和其他爱尔兰小曲,或者更加阴郁的"罗伯特·埃米特挽歌","她距离年轻英雄的长眠之地很远。"他很高兴,一想到今天一整天都在大谈特谈北方佬和战争中度过,更是兴奋极了。同时他也为自己那穿着漂亮裙子、打着可笑的小花阳伞的三个女儿感到骄傲。他不再去想头一天同思嘉进行过的那番谈话,因为那已经从他心里统统跑掉了,他只觉得她很美,足以使他十分自豪,而且今天她的眼睛绿得像爱尔兰山陵呢。这后一种思想使他更加悠然自得,因为其中颇有诗意;于是,他便为姑娘们放声而略略走调地唱起她们心爱的《身穿绿军装》来了。 思嘉用母亲对一个自命不凡的儿子那样既钟爱了又藐视的神情看着他,眼看到日落时他又要喝得酩酊大醉了。他到天黑回家时又将如往常那样跳过从“十二橡树”村到塔拉的那一道道篱笆,不过她希望由于上帝的仁慈和他那骑马的清醒,他不要摔断了脖子才好。偏偏他会不走桥上却策马踏着水过河,然后一路嚷着回家,让波克搀扶着躺到办事房的沙发上,因为这种时候波克经常擎着灯在前厅等候着。 他会糟蹋那套簇新的灰毛料衣服的,为此他将在第二天早晨赌骂发誓详细告诉爱伦,说他的那骑马黑暗中从桥上掉到河里去了----这样一个明明谁也骗不了的谎话却会为大家所接受,让他觉得自己就是高明得很。 思嘉暗想,爸爸是个可爱、自私、不负责任的的宝贝,心头不由得涌起一股对他的热爱之情。今天早晨她感到又兴奋又愉快,仿佛整个世界连同杰拉尔德都包容在她那博爱的胸怀里了。她很漂亮,这一点她自己清楚;她等不到今天过去就要把艾希礼占为己有。阳光温暖而柔和,佐治亚明媚的春光在她眼前展现。大路旁一丛丛黑莓已一起嫩绿,把冬天雨水冲洗下来的红土沟壑都掩盖起来了,而那些从红土中突露出来的花岗岩卵石已开始披上切罗基蔷薇,周围是淡紫色的野罗兰。河岸高处林木葱茏的小山上,山茱萸开满了晶莹的白花,仿佛残雪还在万绿丛中恋恋不舍。开花的山楂子树正迎风怒放,开始从娇白转为粉红,在树下闪耀着光斑的枯松枝间,野忍冬织成了一张猩红、桔红和玫瑰红的三色地毯。微风里掺和着新灌木和野花的淡淡清香,整个世界都是秀色可餐了。 “我将终生记住这天有多么美丽,"思嘉想。"也许这就是我结婚的日子呢!”她怀着兴奋的心情想象自己就在这天下午或者晚间月下,同艾希礼一起坐车穿过这花香叶绿的美景,到琼斯博罗的一家教堂去。自然,她还得在一位亚特兰大牧师的主持下再举行一次婚礼,但那又要叫爱伦和杰拉尔德烦恼了。她设想爱伦听到女儿同另一个姑娘的未婚夫私奔时期得脸色灰白的模样,不由得有点畏缩起来,但是她知道,只要爱伦再看看女儿的幸福光景,也就会原谅她了。杰拉尔德,会大声咒骂的,不过,尽管他昨天警告过她不要嫁给艾希礼,他还是会因为自己家同威尔克斯家做了亲戚而感到说不出的高兴。 “无论如何,这些都我结婚以后的事,现在不必管它,"这样一想,她就把烦恼丢在一边了。 在这样明媚的春天,在这么暖洋洋的阳光下,当“十二橡树”村的烟囱正好开始在那边小山上出现时,你除了尽情欢乐,是不可能有旁的什么感觉的。 “我将一辈子住在那里,我将看见五十个这样的春天,也许更多呢。我将告诉我的儿女和孙儿孙女,这个春天多么美丽,比他们所要看到的都更为可爱。"想到这最后一点时她快活极了,便加入《身穿绿军装》末尾的合唱部分,并且赢得了杰拉尔德的高声称赞。 “我不明白你今天早晨为什么如此快活,"苏伦表示反感地说,因为她心里还在痛苦地嘀咕:要是她穿上思嘉那件新的绿色绸舞衣,她会比思嘉漂亮得多。为什么思嘉总那样自私,不肯把衣服和帽子借给她呢?妈为什么也总是那样护着她,说绿色同苏伦不相配呢。" 你和我一样清楚,艾希礼的亲事要在今晚宣布,爸今天早晨这样说的。当然我也明白,你对他表示亲昵已经好几个月了。”“你就知道这些,"思嘉说着,吐了吐舌头,不想让自己的兴致给破坏了。到明天早晨这个时候,请看苏伦小姐吃惊的模样吧。 “苏伦,你知道事情并不是那样,"卡琳震惊地表示异议。 “思嘉喜欢的是布伦特。” 思嘉那双笑盈盈的绿眼睛望着妹妹,心想她怎么会这样可爱呢。全家都知道,卡琳这个13岁的姑娘已尼倾心于布伦特了,但布伦特却全不在意,只把她当思嘉的小妹妹看待。每当爱伦不在场时,大家总喜欢拿布伦特来捉弄她,直到她哭出来为止。 “我一点也不喜欢布伦特,亲爱的。"思嘉乐得慷慨地说。 “而且他也一点不喜欢我。你看,他正在等着你快快长大呢!"卡琳那张圆圆的小脸红了,她心里又高兴又怀疑,两方面像在打架似的。 “唔,思嘉,你这话当真?” “思嘉,你知道母亲说过,卡琳还太小,还不该想什么男孩子,可你嬷嬷去逗引她。” “好吧,看我究竟喜欢不喜欢,你走着瞧。"思嘉回答道。 “你是要妹妹露脸,因为你知道再过一年左右她就会长得比你漂亮了。”“你们得小心,今天讲话该文明些,否则我回去抽你们,"杰拉尔德警告说。"嘘!别响,我听听,这是马车声吧?准是塔尔顿家或者方丹家的。"他们驶近一个从茂密的山冈下来的交叉道时,马蹄声和车轮声听得更清楚了,同时从树林背后传来嘁嘁喳喳的女人争吵声和欢笑声。走在前头在杰拉尔德勒住马向托比打了个手势,叫他把马车停在交叉路口。 “那是塔尔顿家的姑娘们,"他向他的女儿们宣布,他红润的脸上泛起了光彩,因为,他在全县的太太们中除了爱伦就最喜欢这位红头发的塔尔顿夫人。"而且是她亲自驾车呢。 噢,居然有位玉手纤纤的太太在摆弄马儿啦。轻盈如羽毛,又结实得像张生牛皮,可仍然那么美丽动人呀。你们谁也没有这样好看的手,真太可惜了!"他补充说,一面又钟爱又带责备地向他的女儿们瞟了几眼。"卡琳害怕牲口,苏伦的手一碰缰绳就像摸着熨斗似的,而你这个淘气鬼----”“我么,不管怎样我从来没有给撂下来过,"思嘉气冲冲地嚷道。"可塔尔顿夫人每次打猎都摔跤呢!"他从马镫上欠起身,一扬手把帽子摘下来,这时塔尔顿家的马车满戴着穿得漂漂亮亮、撑着阳散沿着面纱的姑娘出现了,果然塔尔顿夫人如杰拉尔德说的那样坐在车夫座位上。由于马车上挤着她的四个女儿她们的嬷嬷,以及几只装着跳舞衣的长匣子,已再容不下一个车夫了。加上,阿特里斯·塔尔顿只要自己的一双手闲着便从不愿意让任何人来驾车,无论他是黑人还是白人。看来外表娇弱,骨骼纤秀,皮肤白皙得好像那火焰般的头发把她的脸上的全部血色都吸收到这炫亮的一丛里来了,可是她却有着充沛的精神和不倦的体力。她养了八个孩子,都和她一样头发火红,精力旺盛。全县的人都这样说,她把他们教养得十分成功,因为像对待她的那些马驹似的,她把同样的溺爱和最严格的训练都放到他们身上了。"勒住他们,但不要伤了他们的锐气,"这是塔尔顿夫的箴言。 她爱马,也经常谈论马。她了解它们,把它们掌握得比全县任何人都好。她蓄养的小马驹越来越多了,已挤出圈门跑到前面草地上来了,就像她的八个孩子挤出了山上那座散乱不堪的房子似的,于是每当她在农场里转悠时,马驹、儿女和猎狗,都成群地尾随着她。她相信她的马都具有人性,尤其那匹名叫乃利的枣红母马。如果由于家务忙,她来不及在规定时去骑马散心时,她便把糖碗交给一个黑小子,吩咐他:“给乃利一把糖吃,告诉她我马上就出来。"除了某些特殊场合,她经常穿着骑装,因为无论后来是否骑马,她总是希望要骑的,所以,怀着这种期待的心情。她每天气身时就穿上骑装。每天早晨,无论晴雨,乃利都身着鞍辔,在屋前走来走去,等着塔尔顿夫人从家务中抽出一小时来骑它。可是费尔希尔是个很不好管理的农场,难得有空闲时间,因为乃利往往会驮着空鞍一小时又一小时地在那里来回走动,比阿特里斯·塔尔顿则把骑装的衣襟高高扎起来,露出六英寸高的明亮的马靴整天忙活。 今天,她穿一件窄小的下摆不合时宜地深黑绸衣,那模样仍和骑时一样,因为这衣服是严格地按照她的骑装做的,头上戴的又是一顶小黑帽,上面那支长长的黑羽毛把一只热情的高闪闪的褐色眼睛遮住了,这和她打猎时戴的那顶又破又旧的帽一模一样。 她看见杰拉尔德,便挥了挥鞭子,同时把那两匹像在跳舞似的枣红马勒住,马车停下了。马车后座的四们姑娘一齐探出身来,叽哩呱啦地喧嚷着打招呼,把一对辕马都吓得蹦跳起来。这情景在一个偶然经过的旁观者看来,会觉得塔尔顿和奥哈拉两家的人大概是多年不见了,其实他们两天前还见过呢。不过塔尔顿家是个好交际的家庭,喜欢和邻居尤其是奥哈拉家的姑娘拉来往。那就是说,他们喜欢苏伦和卡琳,至于思嘉,除了那个没有头脑的凯瑟琳·卡尔弗特之外,全县没有哪位姑娘真正喜欢她。 这个县在夏天里差不多平均每星期要举行一次全牲野宴和跳舞会,可是对于塔尔顿家那些红头发的最会享乐的人来说,每次野宴和舞会都仿佛是头一次参加似的,总是非常兴奋。她们是一支健美而活泼的四人小分队,挤在马车里衣裙压着衣裙,阳伞遮着阳伞,连宽边早帽上簪着的红玫瑰和系在下巴颏底下的天鹅绒带子也都在互相碰撞着,纠缠里。四顶草帽底下露出了各色的红头发:赫蒂的是正红,卡米拉的是草莓金红,兰达的是铜赭红,贝特西的胡萝卜红。 “太太!好一窝漂亮的云雀呀!"杰拉尔德殷勤地说,一面让自己的马告近塔尔顿的马车。"不过她们要赶上母亲,那还着得远呢。"塔尔顿夫人滴溜溜转着一对红褐色的眼睛,把下嘴唇往里吸着,露出一副略带嘲讽的欣赏模样,这时姑娘们嚷嚷开了:“别飞媚眼了,妈,要不我们告爸去!”“奥哈拉先生,我发誓。妈只要有个像您这样漂亮的男人在身边,她就决不让我们沾边了!"思嘉听了这些俏皮话,和旁的人一起笑起来,不过像往常一样,塔尔顿家的姑娘们对待母亲的那种放肆的态度使她大为惊骇。她们仿佛把她当做一个跟好处自己一样的人,仿佛她刚满16岁呢。对于思嘉,不要说真正跟自己的母亲说这种话,就连这样一个念头几乎也是亵渎的呢。不过----不过----人家姑娘们同母亲的那种关系还是很有意思的。她们尽管那样批评、责备和取笑她,可对她还是崇拜的。不,思嘉立即暗自说,她这并不是想宁愿要一个像塔尔顿夫人那样的母亲,只是偶然觉得同母亲开开玩笑也很有趣罢了。她知道甚至这种想法也是对爱伦的不敬,因此为自己感到羞耻。她知道,马车里那四个火红头发的姑娘是不会为这样胡乱的想法而伤脑筋的,于是像往常一样她又深感自己跟人家不同,又被一起懊恼而惶惑的心情所笼罩了。 思嘉的头脑尽管敏锐,可并不善于分析,不过她朦胧地意识到,虽然塔尔顿家的姑娘们像马驹一样顽皮,像三月的山兔一样撒野,可她们身上还是有一股天生无忧无虑的直率劲儿。她们的父母双方都是佐治亚人,并且是佐治亚南部的人,距离那些开拓者还只有一代。他们对自己和周围环境都有信心。他们本能地知道自己是在干什么,这和威尔克斯家的人一样,尽管方式很不相同;而且这中间没有那种经常在思嘉心中激化的冲突,因为思嘉身上有一种温和的过分讲究教养的滨海贵族血统和一种精明而凡俗的爱尔兰农民血统混合在一起,那是两不相容的。思嘉既要尊敬母亲,把她作为偶像来崇拜,又想揉母亲的头发,并且取笑她。她明白她只能要么这样,要么那样,二者不能兼而有之。跟男孩子一起时,也是同一种感情冲突在作崇,使得她既然装得像个很有教养的温文平静的闺秀,又想作一个顽皮坏女孩,不妨跟人来几次亲吻。 “今天早上爱伦在哪儿?"塔尔顿夫人问。 “她刚刚把家里的监工开除了,她留在家里同他交接账目。你家先生和小伙子们哪儿去了?”“唔,他们几个小时前就骑马到'十二橡树'村去了----我敢说是去品尝那边的混合饮料看够不够劲儿,仿佛他们从现在到明儿早晨都不要喝了!我也想叫约翰·威尔克斯留他们过夜,即使只能让他们睡在牲口棚里也好。五个喝醉了的酒鬼可够我受的了。要是只有三个,我还能对付得了,可是----"杰拉尔德连忙打断她,把话题岔开。他能感觉到自己的三个女儿正在背后暗笑,因为她们还记得去年秋天他参加了威尔克斯举办的那次野宴之后,是在什么样的情景下回家来的。 “塔尔顿夫人?那你今天怎么没骑马呢?说实在的,你没骑上乃利,简直便不像你自己了。你这人就是个斯坦托嘛。”“斯坦托?好个湖涂的汉子?"塔尔顿夫人模仿他的爱尔兰土腔嚷道:“你的意思是说那个半人半马的怪物吧?斯坦托是个嗓门像铜锣的人呀。”“不管它是什么,这没关系,"杰拉尔德回答说,对自己的错误毫不在意。"至少你驱赶起猎狗来,太太,你的嗓门就像铜锣啦。”“这话可对了,妈,"赫蒂说。"我告诉过你,你每回看到一只狐狸都要像个印第安土人那样大喊大叫的。”“可还不如你让嬷嬷洗耳朵时叫得响呢。"塔尔顿夫人回敬她。”而你都16岁了!唔,至于说到我今天怎没骑马,那是因为乃利今天清早下驹儿了。”“真的?"杰拉尔德着实高兴地嚷道,他那爱尔兰人爱马的激情在眼睛里闪闪发亮,同时思嘉从自己母亲和塔尔顿夫人的比较中又吃一惊。对于爱伦来说,母马从不下驹儿,母牛从不产犊儿,当然,母鸡也几乎是不生蛋的。她根本不谈这种事。可是塔尔顿夫人却没有这样的忌讳。 “是匹小母马喽?” “不,腿足有两码长,是个漂亮的小驹子。你一定得过来看看,奥哈拉先生。它可真是一起塔尔顿家的好马。红得像赫蒂的头发呢。”“而且长得也很像赫蒂,”卡米拉说,这惹得长脸的赫蒂动手来拧她,她尖叫一声就躲到一大堆裙子,长裤子和晃动的帽子中间去了。 “我的这几匹小母马今天早晨都快活极了,"塔尔顿夫人说。"我们今天早晨听到艾希礼和他的那个从亚特兰大来的小表妹的消息以后,她们都一直在发疯似的闹个不停。那个表妹叫什么来着?媚兰?上帝保佑,那个怪可疼的小妮子,可是我连她的句字和模样都总是记不起来。我家厨娘是威尔克斯家膳事总管的老婆,那男的晚儿晚上过来谈起了那桩新闻,厨娘今天早晨对我们说了,说今天晚上要宣布这门亲事,姑娘听了都兴奋极了,尽管我看不出这是什么缘故。这几年谁都知道艾希礼要娶她,那就是说,如果他不肯跟梅肯那里伯尔家他的一个表妹结婚的话,这就像霍妮·威尔克斯要跟媚兰的哥哥查尔斯结婚一样。现在,奥哈拉先生,请告诉我,要是威尔克斯家的人同他们家族以外的人结婚,是不是就不合法呢?因为如果----"思嘉没有听见其余那些说笑的话。顷刻间太阳仿佛钻到一团冷酷的乌云背后去了。世界陷入了黑影之中,万物都失去了光彩。那些新生的绿叶也失去了生气,山茱萸变得苍白了,开花的山楂刚才还那么娇娇艳,现在也突然凋谢了。思嘉把手指伸进马车的帷帘里,她的阳伞也跟着抖动了好一会儿。原来,知道艾希礼订婚是一回事,可听见别人这样偶尔谈起来又是另一回事了。但是不久,她的勇气汹涌地回来了,太阳又重新出现了,世界又大放光辉。她知道艾希礼爱她。这是千真万确的。于是她微笑想象,要是这天晚上并没有宣布什么亲事,而是发生了一次私奔,塔尔顿夫人会怎样大惊失色啊!从此以后,塔尔顿夫人会对邻居们说,思嘉这丫头多么狡猾,她居然一声不响坐在那里听她谈媚兰,而她和艾希礼却一直在想着这些,她的两个酒窝也微微颤抖起来。这时,赫蒂始终在观察母亲的话会产生什么效果,现在看见思嘉这模样,便有点迷惑不解地皱着眉头往后一靠,不再操这份心了。 “奥哈拉先生,我不管你的意见怎样,"塔尔顿夫人强调说,"这种中表婚姻是完全错误的。艾希礼要娶汉密尔顿的姑娘是够糟的了,至于霍妮要嫁给那个脸色苍白查尔斯·汉密尔顿----”“霍妮要是不嫁给查理,她就谁也捞不到,"兰达说,她是个对别人刻薄但觉得自己很走俏的人。"除了查理,她从来没有过男朋友。尽管他们已经订婚了。而且他对她也从不怎么亲热,思嘉,你还记得,去年圣诞节他怎么追求你来着----”“可别使坏呀,姑娘,” 她母亲说。"表兄妹不应该结婚,就是从表兄妹也不应该,那会削弱血统的。那跟马不一样。你可以让一起母马跟它的兄弟配,乃至一起公马跟它的女儿配,结果还是很好,如果你懂得血统的话,可是人就不行了。外表也许不错,但精气神儿就不行了。你----”“不过,太太,在这一点上我可要跟你唱反调了。你能举出比威尔克斯家更好的人来吗?他们家从布赖恩·博鲁小时候起就一直是中表结亲呀。”“他们早该停止,因为如今已露出迹象来了。唔,艾希礼他还是长得挺英俊,还没什么,可就连他----不过,请看看威尔克斯家那些没精打采的姑娘吧,真可怜呀!当然,都还是好女孩子,可就是没精打采。再看媚兰那妮子,瘦得像根棍儿,一点精神也没有。真是弱不禁风,她自己没个主攻,只会说:‘不,太太!'' 是的,太太!'你明白我的意思吗?那个家族需要新血液,像我家这些红头发姑娘或你家思嘉那样优美强壮的血液。不过,请不要误解。威尔克斯家就他们为人来说都是些好人,而且你也知道我很喜欢他们,可是让我们坦白说吧!他们吠讲究教养,也太爱搞近亲结婚了。难道不是这样?他们在一块干地上,在一条平坦大路上,会走得很好,可是请听我说,我不相信威尔克斯家的人能够走烂泥路,我认为他们的精气神儿已经耗尽了,因此一旦发生危机,我就不相信他们能经得起风浪。他们是个过太平日子的家族。 至于我,我要的是一起任何天气都能闯的马。而且他们的近亲结婚已经使他们变得跟这一带其他的人不一样了。整天要么弹钢琴,要么钻书本。我相信艾希礼是宁愿读书不愿找猎的。是的,我真相信这一点,奥哈拉先生!你再看看他们的骨骼,太纤细了!他们家需要强壮有力的男女----”“啊----啊----嗯"杰拉尔德若有所思地支吾着。他突然颇为内疚,意识到这番话虽然很有意思,对自己还得当,可是对爱伦就完全是另一回事了。事实上他明折,如果爱伦得知她的几个女儿听了这样毫不忌讳的一次谈话,她一定会永远不舒服。可是塔尔顿太太像往常那样,一谈起无论是马或人的生育这个得意的话题,便根本不听别人的意见而滔滔不绝。 “我说这些话是有感而发的,因为我的一些表亲也是中表结婚,而且老实告诉你,他们的孩子都长得像鼓眼牛娃,真可怜哪!所以,我家里要我跟一位从表兄结婚时,我便像只马驹似的跳了起来,坚决反对。我说,'不,妈。我不能这样。 我的孩子会像马那样得大关节病和气喘病的'好,我妈一听说大关节病便晕倒了,可我巍然不动,我奶奶也支持我。你看,她也很懂得马的繁殖,还夸我说得对呢。于是她帮助我跟着塔尔顿先生逃走了。现在,请看看我的这些孩子!又高大又健康,没有一个带病或矮小的,尽管博伊德只有五英尺十英寸高。可是,他们威尔克斯家----”“太太,你不想换换话题,"杰拉尔德赶紧插嘴,因为他已注意到卡琳的惶惑神色和苏伦脸上流露的贪婪好奇心,恐怕再这样下去她们以后会向爱伦提出烦人的问题,那便暴露出他作为陪女儿外出的监护人是多么不称职了。至于思嘉,他高兴地看到,她似乎在想旁的事情,像个大家闺秀的样子。 赫蒂·塔尔顿把他从困境中救了出来。 “我的天哪,妈,咱们走吧!"她不耐烦地喊道。"看这太阳把烤的,我都听得见痱子在脖子上暴跳出来了。”“等等,太太,过会儿再走,"杰拉尔德说。"那么,关于卖给我们马匹交营里的事,你究竟是怎么决定的?战争眼看随时可能爆发,小伙子们希望这个问题早日落实,那是一支克莱顿县的军队,我们要的也是克莱顿县的马匹。可是你这位太太也实在固执,至今还不同意把你的好马卖给我们。”“也许并不会发生战争呢,"塔尔顿夫人心存观望地说,这时她的心想已经从威尔克斯家的古怪婚姻习惯中彻底转过来了。 “怎么,太太,你不能----” “妈,"赫蒂又一次插进来,"你跟奥哈拉先生到了'十二橡树'村再谈马匹的事不好吗?”“对了,对了,赫蒂小姐,"杰拉尔德说,"我一分钟也不敢耽搁你们啦。咱们不会儿就到'十二橡树'村了,那里的每一个人,老老少少,都想知道马匹的事。不过,看到像你母亲这样一位文雅而漂亮的太太居然那样固执地不肯卖自己的马,我可真伤心呀!塔尔顿夫人,请问,你的爱国心到哪里去了?难道南部联盟对你就毫无意义?”“妈,"小贝特西喊道,"兰达坐在我衣裳上,弄得我浑身都要皱巴巴的了。”“唔,贝特西,把兰达推开,别嚷嚷。现在,杰拉尔德先生,你听我说,"她准备反驳,眼睛开始闪闪发光了。"你犯不着用南部联盟来压我嘛!我认为南部联盟对我像对你一样重要;我有四个男孩子到了营里,可你一个也没有呢。不过我的孩子们能照管自己,而我的马却不行。我要是知道我的马是给那些我认识的小伙子,那些惯于骑纯种马的上等人,我将乐意把它们无偿地献出来。不,我不会有片刻的犹豫。可是,要让我的宝贝们去任凭那些惯于骑骡子的林区和山地人摆布,那可不行,先生!我一想起它们背上长了鞍疮和喂养得不好就要犯梦魇的。你以为我会让那帮蠢货去骑我的这些娇生惯了宝贝,去撕扯它们的嫩嘴,鞭打它们,直到它们给糟蹄蹋得毫无生气吗?你瞧,我现在只要想到这些,就浑身起鸡皮疙瘩了!奥哈拉先生,不行。你想要我的马,这是好意,不过你最好还是行到亚特兰大去买些老废物来给你们的庄稼汉去骑吧。反正他们永远也分不出好歹来的。”“妈,咱们继续赶路不好吗?”卡米拉也加入了这个等得不耐烦的合唱。"你明明知道最后你还是会把你的那些宝贝交给他们的。只要爸和几个男孩子跟你仔细谈谈南部联盟是多么需要马匹,你就会哭着把它们交出去了。"塔尔顿太太抖了抖缰绳咧嘴一笑。 “我不会做那种事的,"她说着用鞭子在那两骑马背上轻轻碰了一下。马车又飞速地行驶了。 “真是个好女人,"杰拉尔德说,一面把帽子戴上,回到自己的马车旁。"走吧,托比。我们要把她磨服,还是会弄到那些马的。当然喽,她说得也对。她是对的。谁要不是上等人,他就没资格骑马。他应当去当步兵。不过最糟糕的是这个县里没有足够的农场主子弟来编成一个整营呢。你说怎么样,小女儿?”“爸,请你要么走在我们前头,要么在后面。看你踢起这么一大堆的尘土,都快把我们呛死了,”思嘉说,她觉得要再也无法忍受这种谈话了。因为别人的谈话使她不有好好思考,而她急于要在抵达“十二橡树”之前整理好思想,同时准备一副光彩动人的面容。杰拉尔德顺从地刺了刺马肚子,一溜烟跑到前头追赶塔尔顿家的马车去了,到那里他还可以继续关于马匹的谈话。 |
CHAPTER IV THAT NIGHT AT SUPPER, Scarlett went through the motions of presiding over the table in her mother’s absence, but her mind was in a ferment over the dreadful news she had heard about Ashley and Melanie. Desperately she longed for her mother’s return from the Slatterys’, for, without her, she felt lost and alone. What right had the Slatterys and their everlasting sickness to take Ellen away from home just at this time when she, Scarlett, needed her so much? Throughout the dismal meal, Gerald’s booming voice battered against her ears until she thought she could endure it no longer. He had forgotten completely about his conversation with her that afternoon and was carrying on a monologue about the latest news from Fort Sumter, which he punctuated by hammering his fist on the table and waving his arms in the air. Gerald made a habit of dominating the conversation at mealtimes, and usually Scarlett, occupied with her own thoughts, scarcely heard him; but tonight she could not shut out his voice, no matter how much she strained to listen for the sound of carriage wheels that would herald Ellen’s return. Of course, she did not intend to tell her mother what was so heavy on her heart, for Ellen would be shocked and grieved to know that a daughter of hers wanted a man who was engaged to another girl. But, in the depths of the first tragedy she had ever known, she wanted the very comfort of her mother’s presence. She always felt secure when Ellen was by her, for there was nothing so bad that Ellen could not better it, simply by being there. She rose suddenly from her chair at the sound of creaking wheels in the driveway and then sank down again as they went on around the house to the back yard. It could not be Ellen, for she would alight at the front steps. Then there was an excited babble of negro voices in the darkness of the yard and high-pitched negro laughter. Looking out the window, Scarlett saw Pork, who had left the room a moment before, holding high a flaring pine knot, while indistinguishable figures descended from a wagon. The laughter and talking rose and fell in the dark night air, pleasant, homely, carefree sounds, gutturally soft, musically shrill. Then feet shuffled up the back-porch stairs and into the passageway leading to the main house, stopping in the hall just outside the dining room. There was a brief interval of whispering, and Pork entered, his usual dignity gone, his eyes rolling and his teeth a-gleam. “Mist’ Gerald,” he announced, breathing hard, the pride of a bridegroom all over his shining face, “you’ new ‘oman done come.” “New woman? I didn’t buy any new woman,” declared Gerald, pretending to glare. “Yassah, you did, Mist’ Gerald! Yassah! An’ she out hyah now wanting ter speak wid you,” answered Pork, giggling and twisting his hands in excitement. “Well, bring in the bride,” said Gerald, and Pork, turning, beckoned into the hall to his wife, newly arrived from the Wilkes plantation to become part of the household of Tara. She entered, and behind her, almost hidden by her voluminous calico skirts, came her twelve-year-old daughter, squirming against her mother’s legs. Dilcey was tall and bore herself erectly. She might have been any age from thirty to sixty, so unlined was her immobile bronze face. Indian blood was plain in her features, overbalancing the negroid characteristics. The red color of her skin, narrow high forehead, prominent cheek bones, and the hawk-bridged nose which flattened at the end above thick negro lips, all showed the mixture of two races. She was self-possessed and walked with a dignity that surpassed even Mammy’s, for Mammy had acquired her dignity and Dilcey’s was in her blood. When she spoke, her voice was not so slurred as most negroes’ and she chose her words more carefully. “Good evenin’, young Misses. Mist’ Gerald, I is sorry to ‘sturb you, but I wanted to come here and thank you agin fo’ buyin’ me and my chile. Lots of gentlemens might a’ bought me but they wouldn’t a’ bought my Prissy, too, jes’ to keep me frum grievin’ and I thanks you. I’m gwine do my bes’ fo’ you and show you I ain’t forgettin’.” “Hum—hurrump,” said Gerald, clearing his throat in embarrassment at being caught openly in an act of kindness. Dilcey turned to Scarlett and something like a smile wrinkled the corners of her eyes. “Miss Scarlett, Poke done tole me how you ast Mist Gerald to buy me. And so I’m gwine give you my Prissy fo’ yo’ own maid.” She reached behind her and jerked the little girl forward. She was a brown little creature, with skinny legs like a bird and a myriad of pigtails carefully wrapped with twine sticking stiffly out from her head. She had sharp, knowing eyes that missed nothing and a studiedly stupid look on her face. “Thank you, Dilcey,” Scarlett replied, “but I’m afraid Mammy will have something to say about that. She’s been my maid ever since I was born.” “Mammy getting ole,” said Dilcey, with a calmness that would have enraged Mammy. “She a good mammy, but you a young lady now and needs a good maid, and my Prissy been maidin’ fo’ Miss India fo’ a year now. She kin sew and fix hair good as a grown pusson.” Prodded by her mother, Prissy bobbed a sudden curtsy and grinned at Scarlett, who could not help grinning back. “A sharp little wench,” she thought, and said aloud: “Thank you, Dilcey, we’ll see about it when Mother comes home.” “Thankee, Ma’m. I gives you a good night,” said Dilcey and, turning, left the room with her child, Pork dancing attendance. The supper things cleared away, Gerald resumed his oration, but with little satisfaction to himself and none at all to his audience. His thunderous predictions of immediate war and his rhetorical questions as to whether the South would stand for further insults from the Yankees only produced faintly bored, “Yes, Papas” and “No, Pas.” Carreen, sitting on a hassock under the big lamp, was deep in the romance of a girl who had taken the veil after her lover’s death and, with silent tears of enjoyment oozing from her eyes, was pleasurably picturing herself in a white coif. Suellen, embroidering on what she gigglingly called her “hope chest,” was wondering if she could possibly detach Stuart Tarleton from her sister’s side at the barbecue tomorrow and fascinate him with the sweet womanly qualities which she possessed and Scarlett did not. And Scarlett was in a tumult about Ashley. How could Pa talk on and on about Fort Sumter and the Yankees when he knew her heart was breaking? As usual in the very young, she marveled that people could be so selfishly oblivious to her pain and the world rock along just the same, in spite of her heartbreak. Her mind was as if a cyclone had gone through it, and it seemed strange that the dining room where they sat should be so placid, so unchanged from what it had always been. The heavy mahogany table and sideboards, the massive silver, the bright rag rugs on the shining floor were all in their accustomed places, just as if nothing had happened. It was a friendly and comfortable room and, ordinarily, Scarlett loved the quiet hours which the family spent there after supper; but tonight she hated the sight of it and, if she had not feared her father’s loudly bawled questions, she would have slipped away, down the dark hall to Ellen’s little office and cried out her sorrow on the old sofa. That was the room that Scarlett liked the best in all the house. There, Ellen sat before her tall secretary each morning, keeping the accounts of the plantation and listening to the reports of Jonas Wilkerson, the overseer. There also the family idled while Ellen’s quill scratched across her ledgers, Gerald in the old rocker, the girls on the sagging cushions of the sofa that was too battered and worn for the front of the house. Scarlett longed to be there now, alone with Ellen, so she could put her head in her mother’s lap and cry in peace. Wouldn’t Mother ever come home? Then, wheels ground sharply on the graveled driveway, and the soft murmur of Ellen’s voice dismissing the coachman floated into the room. The whole group looked up eagerly as she entered rapidly, her hoops swaying, her face tired and sad. There entered with her the faint fragrance of lemon verbena sachet, which seemed always to creep from the folds of her dresses, a fragrance that was always linked in Scarlett’s mind with her mother. Mammy followed at a few paces, the leather bag in her hand, her underlip pushed out and her brow lowering. Mammy muttered darkly to herself as she waddled, taking care that her remarks were pitched too low to be understood but loud enough to register her unqualified disapproval. “I am sorry I am so late,” said Ellen, slipping her plaid shawl from drooping shoulders and handing it to Scarlett, whose cheek she patted in passing. Gerald’s face had brightened as if by magic at her entrance. “Is the brat baptized?” he questioned. “Yes, and dead, poor thing,” said Ellen. “I feared Emmie would die too, but I think she will live.” The girls’ faces turned to her, startled and questioning, and Gerald wagged his head philosophically. “Well, ‘tis better so that the brat is dead, no doubt, poor fatherle—” “It is late. We had better have prayers now,” interrupted Ellen so smoothly that, if Scarlett had not known her mother well, the interruption would have passed unnoticed. It would be interesting to know who was the father of Emmie Slattery’s baby, but Scarlett knew she would never learn the truth of the matter if she waited to hear it from her mother. Scarlett suspected Jonas Wilkerson, for she had frequently seen him walking down the road with Emmie at nightfall. Jonas was a Yankee and a bachelor, and the fact that he was an overseer forever barred him from any contact with the County social life. There was no family of any standing into which he could marry, no people with whom he could associate except the Slatterys and riffraff like them. As he was several cuts above the Slatterys in education, it was only natural that he should not want to marry Emmie, no matter how often he might walk with her in the twilight. Scarlett sighed, for her curiosity was sharp. Things were always happening under her mother’s eyes which she noticed no more than if they had not happened at all. Ellen ignored all things contrary to her ideas of propriety and tried to teach Scarlett to do the same, but with poor success. Ellen had stepped to the mantel to take her rosary beads from the small inlaid casket in which they always reposed when Mammy spoke up with firmness. “Miss Ellen, you gwine eat some supper befo’ you does any prayin’.” “Thank you. Mammy, but I am not hungry.” “Ah gwine fix yo’ supper mahseff an’ you eats it,” said Mammy, her brow furrowed with indignation as she started down the hall for the kitchen. “Poke!” she called, “tell Cookie stir up de fiah. Miss Ellen home.” As the boards shuddered under her weight, the soliloquy she had been muttering in the front hall grew louder and louder, coming clearly to the ears of the family in the dining room. “Ah has said time an’ again, it doan do no good doin’ nuthin’ fer w’ite trash. Dey is de shiflesses, mos’ ungrateful passel of no-counts livin’. An’ Miss Ellen got no bizness weahin’ herseff out waitin’ on folks dat did dey be wuth shootin’ dey’d have niggers ter wait on dem. An’ Ah has said—” Her voice trailed off as she went down the long open passageway, covered only by a roof, that led into the kitchen. Mammy had her own method of letting her owners know exactly where she stood on all matters. She knew it was beneath the dignity of quality white folks to pay the slightest attention to what a darky said when she was just grumbling to herself. She knew that to uphold this dignity, they must ignore what she said, even if she stood in the next room and almost shouted. It protected her from reproof, and it left no doubt in anyone’s mind as to her exact views on any subject. Pork entered the room, bearing a plate, silver and a napkin. He was followed closely by Jack, a black little boy of ten, hastily buttoning a white linen jacket with one hand and bearing in the other a fly-swisher, made of thin strips of newspaper tied to a reed longer than he was. Ellen had a beautiful peacock-feather fly-brusher, but it was used only on very special occasions and then only after domestic struggle, due to the obstinate conviction of Pork, Cookie and Mammy that peacock feathers were bad luck. Ellen sat down in the chair which Gerald pulled out for her and four voices attacked her. “Mother, the lace is loose on my new ball dress and I want to wear it tomorrow night at Twelve Oaks. Won’t you please fix it?” “Mother, Scarlett’s new dress is prettier than mine and I look like a fright in pink. Why can’t she wear my pink and let me wear her green? She looks all right in pink.” “Mother, can I stay up for the ball tomorrow night? I’m thirteen now—” “Mrs. O’Hara, would you believe it— Hush, you girls, before I take me crop to you! Cade Calvert was in Atlanta this morning and he says—will you be quiet and let me be hearing me own voice?—and he says it’s all upset they are there and talking nothing but war, militia drilling, troops forming. And he says the news from Charleston is that they will be putting up with no more Yankee insults.” Ellen’s tired mouth smiled into the tumult as she addressed herself first to her husband, as a wife should. “If the nice people of Charleston feel that way, I’m sure we will all feel the same way soon,” she said, for she had a deeply rooted belief that, excepting only Savannah, most of the gentle blood of the whole continent could be found in that small seaport city, a belief shared largely by Charlestonians. “No, Carreen, next year, dear. Then you can stay up for balls and wear grown-up dresses, and what a good time my little pink cheeks will have! Don’t pout, dear. You can go to the barbecue, remember that, and stay up through supper, but no balls until you are fourteen.” “Give me your gown, Scarlett, I will whip the lace for you after prayers. “Suellen, I do not like your tone, dear. Your pink gown is lovely and suitable to your complexion, Scarlett’s is to hers. But you may wear my garnet necklace tomorrow night.” Suellen, behind her mother’s back, wrinkled her nose triumphantly at Scarlett who had been planning to beg the necklace for herself. Scarlett put out her tongue at her. Suellen was an annoying sister with her whining and selfishness, and had it not been for Ellen’s restraining hand, Scarlett would frequently have boxed her ears. “Now, Mr. O’Hara, tell me more about what Mr. Calvert said about Charleston,” said Ellen. Scarlett knew her mother cared nothing at all about war and politics and thought them masculine matters about which no lady could intelligently concern herself. But it gave Gerald pleasure to air his views, and Ellen was unfailingly thoughtful of her husband’s pleasure. While Gerald launched forth on his news. Mammy set the plates before her mistress, golden-topped biscuits, breast of fried chicken and a yellow yam open and steaming, with melted butter dripping from it. Mammy pinched small Jack, and he hastened to his business of slowly swishing the paper ribbons back and forth behind Ellen. Mammy stood beside the table, watching every forkful that traveled from plate to mouth, as though she intended to force the food down Ellen’s throat should she see signs of flagging. Ellen ate diligently, but Scarlett could see that she was too tired to know what she was eating. Only Mammy’s implacable face forced her to it. When the dish was empty and Gerald only midway in his remarks on the thievishness of Yankees who wanted to free darkies and yet offered no penny to pay for their freedom, Ellen rose. “We’ll be having prayers?” he questioned, reluctantly. “Yes. It is so late—why, it is actually ten o’clock,” as the clock with coughing and tinny thumps marked the hour. “Carreen should have been asleep long ago. The lamp, please. Pork, and my prayer book, Mammy.” Prompted by Mammy’s hoarse whisper. Jack set his fly-brush in the corner and removed the dishes, while Mammy fumbled in the sideboard drawer for Ellen’s worn prayer book. Pork, tiptoeing, reached the ring in the chain and drew the lamp slowly down until the table top was brightly bathed in light and the ceiling receded into shadows. Ellen arranged her skirts and sank to the floor on her knees, laying the open prayer book on the table before her and clasping her hands upon it Gerald knelt beside her, and Scarlett and Suellen took their accustomed places on the opposite side of the table, folding their voluminous petticoats in pads under their knees, so they would ache less from contact with the hard floor. Carreen, who was small for her age, could not kneel comfortably at the table and so knelt facing a chair, her elbows on the seat. She liked this position, for she seldom failed to go to sleep during prayers and, in this posture, it escaped her mother’s notice. The house servants shuffled and rustled in the hall to kneel by the doorway, Mammy groaning aloud as she sank down, Pork straight as a ramrod, Rosa and Teena, the maids, graceful in their spreading bright calicoes, Cookie gaunt and yellow beneath her snowy head rag, and Jack, stupid with sleep, as far away from Mammy’s pinching fingers as possible. Their dark eyes gleamed expectantly, for praying with their white folks was one of the events of the day. The old and colorful phrases of the litany with its Oriental imagery meant little to them but it satisfied something in their hearts, and they always swayed when they chanted the responses: “Lord, have mercy on us,” “Christ, have mercy on us.” Ellen closed her eyes and began praying, her voice rising and falling, lulling and soothing. Heads bowed in the circle of yellow light as Ellen thanked God for the health and happiness of her home, her family and her negroes. When she had finished her prayers for those beneath the roof of Tara, her father, mother, sisters, three dead babies and “all the poor souls in Purgatory,” she clasped her white beads between long fingers and began the Rosary, like the rushing of a soft wind, the responses from black throats and white throats rolled back: “Holy Mary, Mother of God, pray for us sinners, now, and at the hour of our death.” Despite her heartache and the pain of unshed tears, a deep sense of quiet and peace fell upon Scarlett as it always did at this hour. Some of the disappointment of the day and the dread of the morrow departed from her, leaving a feeling of hope. It was not the lifting up of her heart to God that brought this balm, for religion went no more than lip deep with her. It was the sight of her mother’s serene face upturned to the throne of God and His saints and angels, praying for blessings on those whom she loved. When Ellen intervened with Heaven, Scarlett felt certain that Heaven heard. Ellen finished and Gerald, who could never find his beads at prayer time, began furtively counting his decade on his fingers. As his voice droned on Scarlett’s thoughts strayed, in spite of herself. She knew she should be examining her conscience. Ellen had taught her that at the end of each day it was her duty to examine her conscience thoroughly, to admit her numerous faults and pray to God for forgiveness and strength never to repeat them. But Scarlett was examining her heart. She dropped her head upon her folded hands so that her mother could not see her face, and her thoughts went sadly back to Ashley. How could he be planning to marry Melanie when he really loved her, Scarlett? And when he knew how much she loved him? How could he deliberately break her heart? Then, suddenly, an idea, shining and new, flashed like a comet through her brain. “Why, Ashley hasn’t an idea that I’m in love with him!” She almost gasped aloud in the shock of its unexpectedness. Her mind stood still as if paralyzed for a long, breathless instant, and then raced forward. “How could he know? I’ve always acted so prissy and ladylike and touch-me-not around him he probably thinks I don’t care a thing about him except as a friend. Yes, that’s why he’s never spoken! He thinks his love is hopeless. And that’s why he’s looked so—” Her mind went swiftly back to those times when she had caught him looking at her in that strange manner, when the gray eyes that were such perfect curtains for his thoughts had been wide and naked and had in them a look of torment and despair. “He’s been broken hearted because he thinks I’m in love with Brent or Stuart or Cade. And probably he thinks that if he can’t have me, he might as well please his family and marry Melanie. But if he knew I did love him—” Her volatile spirits shot up from deepest depression to excited happiness. This was the answer to Ashley’s reticence, to his strange conduct. He didn’t know! Her vanity leaped to the aid of her desire to believe, making belief a certainty. If he knew she loved him, he would hasten to her side. She had only to— “Oh!” she thought rapturously, digging her fingers into her lowered brow. “What a fool I’ve been not to think of this till now! I must think of some way to let him know. He wouldn’t marry her if he knew I loved him! How could he?” With a start, she realized that Gerald had finished and her mother’s eyes were on her. Hastily she began her decade, telling off the beads automatically but with a depth of emotion in her voice that caused Mammy to open her eyes and shoot a searching glance at her. As she finished her prayers and Suellen, then Carreen, began their decades, her mind was still speeding onward with her entrancing new thought. Even now, it wasn’t too late! Too often the County had been scandalized by elopements when one or the other of the participating parties was practically at the altar with a third. And Ashley’s engagement had not even been announced yet! Yes, there was plenty of time! If no love lay between Ashley and Melanie but only a promise given long ago, then why wasn’t it possible for him to break that promise and marry her? Surely he would do it, if he knew that she, Scarlett loved him. She must find some way to let him know. She would find some way! And then— Scarlett came abruptly out of her dream of delight, for she had neglected to make the responses and her mother was looking at her reprovingly. As she resumed the ritual, she opened her eyes briefly and cast a quick glance around the room. The kneeling figures, the soft glow of the lamp, the dim shadows where the negroes swayed, even the familiar objects that had been so hateful to her sight an hour ago, in an instant took on the color of her own emotions, and the room seemed once more a lovely place. She would never forget this moment or this scene! “Virgin most faithful,” her mother intoned. The Litany of the Virgin was beginning, and obediently Scarlett responded: “Pray for us,” as Ellen praised in soft contralto the attributes of the Mother of God. As always since childhood, this was, for Scarlett, a moment for adoration of Ellen, rather than the Virgin. Sacrilegious though it might be, Scarlett always saw, through her closed eyes, the upturned face of Ellen and not the Blessed Virgin, as the ancient phrases were repeated. “Health of the Sick,” “Seat of Wisdom,” “Refuge of Sinners,” “Mystical Rose”—they were beautiful because they were the attributes of Ellen. But tonight became of the exaltation of her own spirit, Scarlett found in the whole ceremonial, the softly spoken words, the murmur of the responses, a surpassing beauty beyond any that she had ever experienced before. And her heart went up to God in sincere thankfulness that a pathway for her feet had been opened—out of her misery and straight to the arms of Ashley. When the last “Amen” sounded, they all rose, somewhat stiffly, Mammy being hauled to her feet by the combined efforts of Teena and Rosa. Pork took a long spiller from the mantelpiece, lit it from the lamp flame and went into the hall. Opposite the winding stair stood a walnut sideboard, too large for use in the dining room, bearing on its wide top several lamps and a long row of candles in candlesticks. Pork lit one lamp and three candles and, with the pompous dignity of a first chamberlain of the royal bedchamber lighting a king and queen to their rooms, he led the procession up the stairs, holding the light high above his head. Ellen, on Gerald’s arm, followed him, and the girls, each taking her own candlestick, mounted after them. Scarlett entered her room, set the candle on the tall chest of drawers and fumbled in the dark closet for the dancing dress that needed stitching. Throwing it across her arm, she crossed the hall quietly. The door of her parents’ bedroom was slightly ajar and, before she could knock, Ellen’s voice, low but stern, came to her ears. “Mr. O’Hara, you must dismiss Jonas Wilkerson.” Gerald exploded, “And where will I be getting another overseer who wouldn’t be cheating me out of my eye-teeth?” “He must be dismissed, immediately, tomorrow morning. Big Sam is a good foreman and he can take over the duties until you can hire another overseer.” “Ah, ha!” came Gerald’s voice. “So, I understand! Then the worthy Jonas sired the—” “He must be dismissed.” “So, he is the father of Emmie Slattery’s baby,” thought Scarlett “Oh, well. What else can you expect from a Yankee man and a white-trash girl?” Then, after a discreet pause which gave Gerald’s splutterings time to die away, she knocked on the door and handed the dress to her mother. By the time Scarlett had undressed and blown out the candle, her plan for tomorrow had worked itself out in every detail. It was a simple plan, for, with Gerald’s single-mindedness of purpose, her eyes were centered on the goal and she thought only of the most direct steps by which to reach it. First, she would be “prideful,” as Gerald had commanded. From the moment she arrived at Twelve Oaks, she would be her gayest, most spirited self. No one would suspect that she had ever been downhearted because of Ashley and Melanie. And she would flirt with every man there. That would be cruel to Ashley, but it would make him yearn for her all the more. She wouldn’t overlook a man of marriageable age, from ginger-whiskered old Frank Kennedy, who was Suellen’s beau, on down to shy, quiet, blushing Charles Hamilton, Melanie’s brother. They would swarm around her like bees around a hive, and certainly Ashley would be drawn from Melanie to join the circle of her admirers. Then somehow she would maneuver to get a few minutes alone with him, away from the crowd. She hoped everything would work out that way, because it would be more difficult otherwise. But if Ashley didn’t make the first move, she would simply have to do it herself. When they were finally alone, he would have fresh in his mind the picture of the other men thronging about her, he would be newly impressed with the fact that every one of them wanted her, and that look of sadness and despair would be in his eyes. Then she would make him happy again by letting him discover that popular though she was, she preferred him above any other man in all the world. And when she admitted it, modestly and sweetly, she would look a thousand things more. Of course, she would do it all in a ladylike way. She wouldn’t even dream of saying to him boldly that she loved him—that would never do. But the manner of telling him was a detail that troubled her not at all. She had managed such situations before and she could do it again. Lying in the bed with the moonlight streaming dimly over her, she pictured the whole scene in her mind. She saw the look of surprise and happiness that would come over his face when he realized that she really loved him, and she heard the words he would say asking her to be his wife. Naturally, she would have to say then that she simply couldn’t think of marrying a man when he was engaged to another girl, but he would insist and finally she would let herself be persuaded. Then they would decide to run off to Jonesboro that very afternoon and— Why, by this time tomorrow night, she might be Mrs. Ashley Wilkes! She sat up in bed, hugging her knees, and for a long happy moment she was Mrs. Ashley Wilkes—Ashley’s bride! Then a slight chill entered her heart. Suppose it didn’t work out this way? Suppose Ashley didn’t beg her to run away with him? Resolutely she pushed the thought from her mind. “I won’t think of that now,” she said firmly. “If I think of it now, it will upset me. There’s no reason why things won’t come out the way I want them—if he loves me. And I know he does!” She raised her chin and her pale, black-fringed eyes sparkled in the moonlight. Ellen had never told her that desire and attainment were two different matters; life had not taught her that the race was not to the swift. She lay in the silvery shadows with courage rising and made the plans that a sixteen-year-old makes when life has been so pleasant that defeat is an impossibility and a pretty dress and a clear complexion are weapons to vanquish fate. 第四章 那天吃晚饭时,思嘉因母亲不在代为主持了全部的用餐程序,但是她心中一起纷扰,说什么也放不下她所听到的关于艾希礼和媚兰的那个可怕的消息。她焦急地盼望母亲从斯莱特里家回来,因为母亲一不在场,她便感到孤单和迷惘了。 斯莱特里家和他们闹个不停的病痛,有什么权利就在她思嘉正那么迫切需要母亲的时候把爱伦从家中拉走呢? 这顿不愉快的晚餐自始自终只听见杰拉尔德那低沉的声音在耳边回响,直到她发觉自己已实在无法忍受了为止。他已经完全忘记了那天下午同思嘉的谈话,一个劲儿地在唱独脚戏,讲那个来自萨姆特要塞的最新消息,一面配合声调用拳头在餐桌上敲击,同时不停地挥舞臂膀。杰拉尔德已养成了餐桌上垄断谈话的习惯,但往往思嘉不去听他,只默默地琢磨自己的心事。可是今晚她再也挡不住他的声音了,不管她仍多么紧张地在倾听是否有马车辚辚声说明爱伦回来了。 当然,她并不想将自己心头的沉重负担向母亲倾诉,因为爱伦如果知道了她的女儿想嫁给一个已经同别人订婚的男人,一定会大为震惊和十分痛苦的。不过,她此刻正沉浸在一个前所未有的悲剧中,很需要母亲在一在场便能给予她的那点安慰,每当母亲在身边时,思嘉总觉得安全可靠,因为只要爱伦在,什么糟糕的事都可以弄得好好的。 一听到车道上吱吱的车轮声她便忽地站起身来,接着又坐下,因为马车显然已走到屋后院子里去了。那不可能是爱伦,她是会在前面台阶旁下车的。这时,从黑暗的院子里传来了黑人位兴奋的谈话声和尖利的笑声,思嘉朝窗外望去,看见刚才从屋里出去的波克高擎着一个火光熊熊的松枝火把,照着几个模糊的人影从大车上下来了。笑声和谈话声在黑沉沉的夜雾中时高时低,显得愉快、亲切、随便,这些声音有的沙破而缓和,有的如音乐般嘹亮。接着是后面走廊阶梯上嘈杂的脚步声,渐渐进入通向主楼的过道,直到餐厅外面的穿堂里才停止了。然后,经过片刻的耳语,波克进来了,他那严肃的神气已经消失,眼睛滴溜溜直转,一口雪白的牙齿闪闪发光。 “杰拉尔德先生,"他气喘吁吁地喊道,满脸焕发着新郎的喜气,"您新买的那个女人到了。”“新买的女人?我可不曾买过女人呀!"杰拉尔德声明,装出一副瞠目结舌的模样。 “是有,杰拉尔德先生!您买的,是的!她就在外面,要跟您说话呢。"波克回答说,激动得搓着两只手,吃吃地笑着。 “好,把新娘引进来,"杰拉尔德说。于是波克转过身去,招呼他老婆走进饭厅,这就是刚刚从威尔克斯农场赶来,要在塔拉农场当一名家属的那个女人。她进来了,后面跟随着她那个12岁的女儿----她怯生生地紧挨着母亲的腿,几乎被那件肥大的印花布裙子给遮住了。 身材高大迪尔茜的腰背挺直。她的年纪从外表看不清楚,少到30,多到60,怎么都行。她那张呆板的紫铜色脸上还没有皱纹呢。她的面貌显然带有印第安人血统,这比非洲黑人的特征更为突出。她那红红的皮肤,窄而高的额头,高耸的颧骨,以及下端扁平的鹰钩鼻子(再下面是肥厚的黑人嘴唇),所以这些都说明她是两个种族的混种。她显得神态安祥,走路时的庄重气派甚至超过了嬷嬷,因为嬷嬷的气派是学来的,而迪尔茜却是生成的。 她说话的声音不像大多数黑人那样含糊不清,而且更注意选择字眼。 “小姐,您好。杰拉尔德先生,很抱歉打扰您了,不过俺要来再次谢谢您把俺和俺的孩子一起给买过来。有许多先生要买俺来着,可就不想把俺的百里茜也买下,这会叫俺伤心的。所以俺要谢谢您。俺要尽力给您干活儿,好让您知道俺没有忘记你的大德。”“嗯---- 嗯,"杰拉尔德应着,不好意思地清了清嗓子,因为他做的这番好事被当众揭开了。 迪尔茜转向思嘉,眼角皱了皱,仿佛露出了一丝微笑。 “思嘉小姐,波克告诉了俺,您要求杰拉尔德先生把俺买过来。 今儿个俺要把俺的百里茜送给您,做您的贴身丫头。"她伸手往后把那个小女孩拉了出来。那是个棕褐色的小家伙,两条腿细得像鸡脚,头上矗立着无数条用细绳精心缠住的小辫儿。她有一双尖利而懂事的、不会漏掉任何东西的眼睛,脸上却故意装出一副傻相。 “迪尔茜,谢谢你!"思嘉答道,“不过我怕嬷嬷要说话的。 我一生来就由她一直在服侍着呢。” “嬷嬷也老啦,"迪尔茜说,她那平静的语调要是嬷嬷听见了准会生气的。”她是个好嬷嬷,不过像您这样一位大小姐,如今应当有个使唤的丫头才是。俺的百里茜倒是在英迪亚小姐跟前干过一年了。她会缝衣裳,会梳头,能干得像个大人呢。"在母亲的怂恿下百里茜突然向思嘉行了个屈膝礼,然后咧着嘴朝她笑了笑;思嘉也只她回报她一丝笑容。 “好一个机灵的小娼妇,"她想,于是便大声说:“迪尔茜,谢谢你了,等嬷嬷回来之后咱们再谈这事吧。”“小姐,谢谢您。这就请您晚安了,"迪尔茜说完便转过身去,带着她的孩子走了,波克蹦蹦跳跳地跟在后面。 晚餐桌上的东西已收拾完毕,杰拉尔德又开始他的讲演,但好像连自己也并不怎么满意,就更不用说听的人。他令人吃惊地预告战争既将爆发,同时巧妙地询问听众:南方是否还要忍受北方佬的侮辱呢?他所引起的只是些颇不耐烦的回答----"是的,爸爸",或者" 不,爸爸,"如此而已。这时卡琳坐在灯底下的矮登上,深深沉浸于一个姑娘在情人死后当尼姑的爱情故事里,同时,眼中噙着欣赏的泪花在惬意地设想自己戴上护士帽的姿容。苏伦一面在她自己笑嘻嘻地称之为"嫁妆箱"的东西上剌绣,一面思忖着在明天的全牲大宴上她可不可能把斯图尔特·塔尔顿从她姐姐身边拉过来,并以她所特有而思嘉恰恰缺少的那种妩媚的女性美把他迷祝思嘉呢,她则早已被艾希礼的问题搅得六神无主了。 爸爸既然知道了她的伤心事,他怎么还能这样喋喋不休地尽谈萨姆特要塞和北方佬呢?像小时候惯常有过的那样,她奇怪人们居然会那样自私,毫不理睬她的痛苦,而且不管她多么伤心,地球仍照样安安稳稳地转动。 仿佛她心里刚刮过了一阵旋风,奇怪的是他们坐着的这个饭厅意显得那么平静,这么与平常一样毫无变化。那张笨重的红木餐桌和那些餐具柜,那块铺在光滑地板上的鲜艳的旧地毯,全都照常摆在原来的地方,就好像什么事也不曾发生似的。这是一间亲切而舒适的餐厅,平日思嘉很爱一家人晚餐后坐在这里时那番宁静的光景;可是今晚她恨它的这副模样,而且,要不是害怕父亲的厉声责问,她早就溜走,溜过黑暗的穿堂到爱伦的小小办事房去了,她在那里可以倒在旧沙发上痛哭一场啊! 整个住宅里那是思嘉最喜爱的一个房间。在那儿,爱伦每天早晨坐在高高的写字台前写着农场的账目,听着监工乔纳斯·威尔克森的报告。那儿也是全家休憩的地方,当爱伦忙着在账簿上刷刷写着时,杰拉尔德躺在那把旧摇椅里养神,姑娘们则坐下陷的沙发势子上---- 这些沙发已破旧得不好摆在前屋里了。此刻思嘉渴望到那里去,单独同爱伦在一起,好让她把头搁在母亲膝盖上,安安静静地哭一阵子,难道母亲就不回来了吗? 不久,传来车轮轧着石子道的嘎嘎响声,接着是爱伦打发车夫走的声音,她随即就进屋里来了。大家一起抬头望着她迅速走近的身影,她的裙箍左可摇摆,脸色显得疲倦而悲伤。她还带进来一股淡淡的柠檬香味,她的衣服上好像经常散发出这种香味,因此在思嘉心目中它便同母亲连在一起了。 嬷嬷相隔几步也进了饭厅,手里拿着皮包,有意把声音放低到不让人听懂,同时又保持一定的高度,好叫人家知道她反正是不满意。 “这么晚才回来,很抱歉。"爱伦说,一面将披巾从肩头取下来,递给思嘉,同时顺手在她面颊上摸了摸。 杰拉尔德一见她进来便容光焕发了,仿佛施了魔术似的。 “那娃娃给施了洗礼了?” “可怜的小东西,施了,也死了。"爱伦回答说。"我本来担心埃米也会死,不过现在我想她会活下去的。"姑娘们都朝她望着,满脸流露出惊疑的神色,杰拉尔德却表示达观地摇了摇头。 “唔,对,还是孩子死了好,可怜的没爹娃----”“不早了,现在咱们做祈祷吧,"爱伦那么机灵地打断的杰拉尔德的话,要不是思嘉很了解母亲,谁也不会注意她这一招的用意呢。 究竟谁是埃米·斯莱特里的婴儿的父亲呢?这无颖是个很有趣的问题。但思嘉心里明白,要是等待母亲来说明,那是永远也不会弄清事实真相的。思嘉怀疑是乔纳斯·威尔克森,因为她常常在天快黑时看见他同埃米一起在大路上走。乔纳斯是北方佬,没有老婆,而他既当了监工,便一辈子也参加不了县里的社交活动。正经人家都不会招他做女婿,除了像斯莱特里的那一类的下等人之外,也没有什么人,会愿意同他交往的。由于他在文化程度上比斯莱特里家的人高出一头,他自然不想娶埃米,尽管他也不妨常常在暮色苍茫中同她一起走走。 思嘉叹了口气,因为她的好奇心实太大了。事情常常在她母亲的眼皮底下发生,可是她从不注意,仿佛根本没有发生过似的。对于那些自认为不正当的事情爱伦总是不屑一顾,并且想教导思嘉也这样做,可是没有多大效果。 爱伦向壁炉走去,想从那个小小的嵌花匣子里把念珠取来,这时嬷嬷大声而坚决地说: “爱伦小姐,你还是先吃点东西再去做你的祷告吧!”“嬷嬷,谢谢你,可是我不饿。” “你准备吃吧,俺这就给你弄晚饭,"嬷嬷说,她烦恼地皱着眉头,走出饭厅要到厨房去,一路上喊道:“波克,叫厨娘把火捅一捅。爱伦小姐回来了。”地板在她脚下一路震动,她在前厅唠叨的声音也越来越高以致饭厅里全家人都清清楚楚听见了。 “给那些下流白人做事没啥意思。俺说过多回了,他们全是懒虫,不识好歹。爱伦小姐犯不着辛辛苦苦去伺候这些人。 他们果真值得人伺候,怎么没买几个黑人来使唤呢。俺还说过----"她的声音随着她一路穿过那条长长的、只有顶篷滑栏杆的村道,那是通向厨房的必经之路。嬷嬷总有她自己的办法来让主子们知道她对种种事情究竟抱什么态度。就在她独自嘟囔时她也清楚,要叫上等白人来注意一个黑人的话是有失身份的,她知道,为了保持这种尊严,他们必须不理睬她所说的那些话,即使是站在隔壁房间里大声嚷嚷。如此既可以保证她不受责备,同时又能使任何人都心中明白她在每个问题上都有哪些想法。 波克手里拿着一个盘子、一副刀叉和一条餐巾进来了。他后面紧跟着杰克,一个十岁的黑人男孩,他一只手忙着扣白色的短衫上的钮扣,另一手拿了个拂尘,那是用细细的报纸条儿绑在一根比他还高的苇秆上做成的。爱伦有个只在特殊场合使用的精美的孔雀毛驱蝇帚,而且由于波克、厨娘和嬷嬷都坚信孔雀毛不吉利,给之派上用场是经过一番家庭斗争的。 爱伦在杰拉尔德递过来的哪把椅子上坐下,这时四个声音一起向他发起了攻势。 “妈,我那件新跳舞衣的花边掉了,明天晚上上'十二橡树'村我得穿呀。请给我钉钉好吗?”“妈,思嘉的新舞衣比我的漂亮。我穿那件粉红的太难看了。怎么她就不能穿我那件粉的,让我穿那件绿的呢?她穿粉的很好看嘛。”“妈,明天晚上我也等到散了舞会才走行吗,现在我都13了----”“你相不个信,噢哈拉太太----姑娘们,别响,我要去拿鞭子了!凯德·卡尔弗特今天上午在亚特兰大对我说----你们安静一点好吗?我连自己的声音都听不见了----他说他们那边简直闹翻了天,大家都在谈战争、民兵训练和组织军队一类的事。还说从查尔斯顿传来了消息,他们再也不会容忍北方佬的欺凌了。"爱伦对这场七嘴八舌的喧哗只微微一笑,不过作为妻子,她得首先跟丈夫说几句。 “要是查尔斯顿那边的先生们都这样想,那么我相信咱们大家也很快就会这样看的," 她说,因为她有个根深蒂固的信念,即除了萨凡纳以外,整个大陆的大多数上等人都能在那个小小的海港城市找到,而这个信念查尔斯顿人也大都有的。 “卡琳,不行,亲爱的,明年再说吧。明年你就可以留下来参加舞会,并且穿成人服装,那时我的小美人该多么光彩呀!别撅嘴了,亲爱的。你可以去参加全牲野宴,请记住这一点,并且一直待到晚餐结束;至于舞会满14岁才行。”“把你的衣服给我吧。思嘉,做完祷告我就替你把花边缝上。”“苏伦,我不喜欢你这种腔调,亲爱的。你那件粉红舞衣挺好看,同你的肤色也很相配,就像思嘉配她的那件一样。不过,明晚你可以戴上我的那条石榴红的项链。"苏伦在她母亲背后向思嘉得意地耸了耸鼻子,因为做姐姐的正打算恳求戴那条项链呢。思嘉也无可奈何地对她吐吐舌头,苏伦是个喜欢抱怨而自私得叫人厌烦的妹妹,要不是爱伦管得严,思嘉不知会打她多少次耳光了。 “奥哈拉先生,好了,现在再给我讲讲卡尔费特先生关于查尔斯顿都谈了些什么吧," 爱伦说。 思嘉知道母亲根本不关心战争和政治,并且认为这是男人的事,哪个妇女都不乐意伤这个脑筋。不过杰拉尔德倒是乐得亮亮自己的观点。而爱伦对于丈夫的乐趣总是很认真的。 杰拉尔德正发布他的新闻时,嬷嬷把几个盘子推到女主人面前,里面有焦皮饼干、油炸鸡脯和切开了的热气腾腾的黄甘薯,上面还淌着融化了的黄油呢。嬷嬷拧了小杰克一下,他才赶紧走到爱伦背后,将那个纸条帚儿缓缓地前后摇拂着。 嬷嬷站在餐桌旁,观望着一叉叉食品从盘子里送到爱伦口中,仿佛只要她发现有点迟疑的迹象,便要强迫将这些吃的塞进爱伦的喉咙里。爱伦努力地吃着,但思嘉看得出她,根本不知道自己在吃什么,她实在太疲乏了,只不过嬷嬷那毫不通融的脸色上迫她这样做罢了。 盘子空了,可杰拉尔德才讲了一半呢,他在批评那些要解放黑奴可又不支付出任何代价的北方佬做起事来那么偷偷摸摸时,爱伦站起身来了。 “咱们要做祷告了?"他很不情愿地问。 “是的。这么晚了----已经十点了,你看,"时钟恰好咳嗽似的闷声闷气地敲着钟点。" 卡琳早就该睡了。请把灯放下来;波克,还有我的《祈祷书》,嬷嬷。”嬷嬷用沙破的嗓音低声吩咐了一句,杰克便将驱蝇帚放在屋角里,动手收拾桌上的杯盘,嬷嬷也到碗柜抽屉里去摸爱伦那本破旧的《祈祷书》。波克踮着脚尖去开灯,他抓住链条上的铜环把灯慢慢放下,直到桌面上一起雪亮而天花板变得阴暗了为止。爱伦散开裙裾,在地板上屈膝跪下,然后把打开的《祈祷书》放在面前的桌上,再合着双手搁在上面。杰拉尔德跪在她旁边,思嘉和苏伦也在桌子对面各就各位地跪着,把宽大的衬裙折起来盘在膝头下面,免得与地板硬碰硬时更难受。卡琳年纪小,跪在桌旁不方便,因此就面对一把椅子跪下,两只臂肘搁在椅上。她喜欢这个位置,因为每缝作祈祷时她很少不打瞌睡的,而这样的姿势却不容易让母亲发现。 家仆们挨挨挤挤地拥进穿堂,跪在门道里。嬷嬷大声哼哼着倒伏在地上,波克的腰背挺直得像很通条,罗莎和丁娜这两个女仆摆开漂亮的印花裙子,有很好看的跪姿。厨娘戴着雪白的头巾,更加显得面黄肌瘦了。杰克正瞌睡得发傻,可是为了躲避嬷嬷那几只经常拧他的手指,他没有忘记尽可能离她远些。他们的黑眼睛都发出期待的光芒,因为同白人主子们一起做祈祷是一天中的一桩大事呢。至于带有东方意象的祷文中那些古老而生动的语句,对他们并没有多大意义,但能够给予他们内心以各种满足。因此当他们念到"主啊,怜悯我们", “基督啊,怜悯我们"时,也总浑身摇摆,仿佛极为感动。 爱伦闭上眼睛开始祷告,声音时高时低,像催眠又像抚慰。当她为自己的家庭成员和黑人们的健康与幸福而感谢上帝时,那昏黄灯光下的每一个人都把头低了下来。 接着她又为她的父母、姐妹,三个夭折的婴儿以及"涤罪所里所有的灵魂"祈祷,然后用细长的手指握着念珠开始念《玫瑰经》。宛如清风流水,所有黑人和白人的喉咙里都唱出了应答的圣歌声:“圣母马利亚,上帝之母,为我们罪人祈祷吧,现在,以及我们死去的时候。"尽管这个时候思嘉正在伤心和噙着眼泪,她还是深深领略到了往常这个时刻所有的那种宁静的和平。白天经历的部分失望和对明天的恐惧立刻消失了,留下来的一种希望的感觉。但这种安慰不是她那颗升腾到上帝身边的心带来的,因为对于她来说,宗教只不过停留在嘴皮子上而已。给她带来安慰的是母亲仰望上帝圣座和他的圣徒天使们、祈求赐福于她所爱的人时那张宁静的脸。当爱伦同上帝对话时,思嘉坚信上帝一定听见了。 爱伦祷告完,便轮到杰拉尔德。他经常在这种时候找不到念珠,只好偷偷沿着指头计算自己祷告的遍数。他正在嗡嗡地念着时,思嘉的思想便开了小差,自己怎么也控制不住了。她明白应当检查自己的良心。爱伦教育过她,每一天结束时都必须把自己的良心彻底检查一遍,承认自己所有的过失,祈求上帝宽恕并给以力量,做到永不重犯。但是思嘉只检查她的心事。 她把头搁在叠合着的双手上,使母亲无法看见她的脸,于是她的思想便伤心地跑回到艾希礼那儿去了。当他真正爱她的思嘉的时候,他又怎么打算娶媚兰呢?何况他也知道她多么爱他?他怎么能故意伤她的心啊? 接着,一个崭新的念头像颗彗星似的突然在她脑子里掠过。 “怎么,艾希礼并不知道我在爱他呀!” 这个突如起来的念头几乎把她震动得要大声喘息起来。 她的思想木然不动,默无声息,仿佛瘫痪了似的。好一会才继续向前奔跑。 “他怎么能知道呢?我在他面前经常装得那么拘谨,那么庄重,一副'别碰我'的神气,所以他也许认为我一点不把他放在心上,只当作品通朋友而已。对,这就是他从不开口的原因了!他觉得他爱而无望,所以才会显得那样----"她的思路迅速回到了从前的好几次情景,那时她发现他在用一种奇怪的态度瞧着她,那双最善于掩藏思想的灰色眼睛睁得大大的,毫无掩饰,里面饱含着一种痛苦绝望的神情。 “他的心已经伤透了,因为他觉得我在跟布伦特或斯图尔特或凯德恋爱呢。也许他以为如果得不到我,便同媚兰结婚也一样可以叫他家里高兴的。可是,如果他也知道我在爱他-- --"她轻易多变的心情从沮丧的深渊飞升到快乐的云霄中去了。这就是对于艾希礼的沉默和古怪行为的解释。只因为他不明白呀!她的虚荣心赶来给她所渴望的信念帮忙了,使这一信念变成了千真万确的故事。如果他知道她爱他,他就会赶忙到她身边来。她只消----“啊!” 她乐不可支地想,用手指拧着低垂的额头。"瞧我多傻,竟一直没有想到这一层!我得想个办法让他知道。他要是知道我爱他,便不会去娶媚兰了呀!他怎么会呢?"这时,她猛地发觉杰拉尔德的祷告完了,母亲的眼睛正盯着她呢。她赶快开始她那十遍的诵祷,机械地沿着手里的念珠,不过声音中带有深厚的激情,引得嬷嬷瞪着眼睛仔细地打量她。她念完祷告后,苏伦和卡琳相继照章办事,这时她的心仍在那条诱惑人的新思路上向前飞跑。 即使现在,也还不太晚哩!在这个县,那种所谓丢人的私奔事件太常见了,那时当事人的一方或另一方实际上已和一个第三者站到了婚礼台上。何况艾希礼的事连订婚还没有宣布呢?是的,还有的是时间! 假设艾希礼和媚兰之间没有爱情而只有很久以前许下的一个承诺,那他为什么不可能废除那个诺言来同她结婚呢?他准会这么办的,要是他知道她思嘉爱他的话。她必须想法让知道。她一定要想出个办法来!然后----思嘉忽然从欢乐梦中惊醒过来,她疏忽了没有接腔,她母亲正用责备的眼光瞧着她呢。她一面重新跟上仪式,一面睁开眼睛迅速环顾周围,那些跪着的身影,那柔和的灯光,黑人摇摆时那些阴暗的影子,甚至那些在一个钟头之前她看来还很讨厌的熟悉家具,一时之间都涂上了她自己的情绪的色彩,整个房间又显得很可爱了!她永远也不会忘记这个时刻和这番景象! “最最忠贞的圣母,"母亲吟诵着。现在开始念圣母连祷文了,爱伦用轻柔的低音赞颂圣母的美德,思嘉便随声应答:“为我们祈祷吧。"对思嘉而言,从小以来,这个时刻与其说是崇敬圣母还不如说是崇敬爱伦。尽管这有点亵渎神圣的味道,思嘉阖着眼睛经常看见的还是爱伦那张仰着的脸,而不是古老颂词所反复提到的圣母面容。"病人的健康"、"智慧的中心"、"罪人的庇护"、"神奇的玫瑰"----这些词语之所以美好,就因为它们是爱伦的品性。然而今晚,由于她自己意气昂扬,思嘉发现整个仪式中这些低声说出的词语和含糊不清的答应声有一种她从未经历过的崇高的美。所以她的心升腾到了上帝的身边,并且真诚地感谢为她脚下开辟了一条道路----一条摆脱痛苦和径直走向艾希礼怀抱的道路。 说过最后一声"阿门",大家有点僵痛地站起身来,嬷嬷还是由丁娜和罗莎合力拉起来的。波克从炉台上拿来一根长长的纸捻儿,在灯上点燃了,然后走入穿堂。那螺旋形楼梯的对面摆着个胡桃木碗柜,在饭厅里显得有点大而无当,宽阔的柜顶上放着几只灯盏和插在烛台上的长长一排蜡烛。波克点燃一盏灯和三支蜡烛,然后以一个皇帝寝宫中头等待从照着皇帝和皇后进卧室的庄严神情,高高举起灯盏领着这一群人上楼去。爱伦挎着杰拉尔德的臂膀跟在他后面,姑娘们也各自端着烛台陆续上楼了。 思嘉走进自己房里,把烛台放在高高的五斗柜上,然后在漆黑的壁橱里摸索那件需要修改的舞衣。她把衣服搭在胳臂上,悄悄走过穿堂。她父母卧室的门半开着,她正要去敲门,忽然听到爱伦很低,也很严肃的声音。 “杰拉尔德先生,你得把乔纳斯·威尔克森开除。"杰拉尔德一听便发作起来,”那叫我再到哪里去找个不在我跟着搞鬼的监工呢?”“必须立即开除他,明天早晨就开除。大个儿萨姆是个不错的工头,在找到新的监工以前,可以让他暂时顶替一下。”“啊哈!"杰拉尔德大声说,"我这才明白,原来是这位宝贝乔纳斯生下了----”“必须开除他。”“如此说来,他就是埃米·斯莱特里那个婴儿的父亲喽,”思嘉心想。"唔,好呀。一个北方佬跟一个下流白人的女孩,他们还能干出什么好事来呢?"稍稍停顿了一会,让杰拉尔德的唾沫星子消失之后,思嘉才敲门进去,把衣裳交给母亲。 到思嘉脱掉衣服、吹熄了蜡烛时,她明天准备实行的那个计划已经被安排得十分周密了。这个计划很简单,因为她怀有杰拉尔德那种刻意追求的精神,把注意力集中在那个目标上,只考虑达到这个目标所能采取的最直接的步骤。 ##第一,她要像杰拉尔德所吩咐的那样,装出一副"傲慢"的神气,从到达“十二橡树”村那一刻起,她就要摆出自己最快乐最豪爽的本性来。谁也不会想到她曾经由于艾希礼和媚兰的事而沮丧过。她还要跟那个县里的每一个男人调情。这会使得艾希礼无法忍受,但却越发爱慕她。她不会放过一个处于结婚年龄的男人,从苏伦的意中人黄胡子的老弗兰克·肯尼迪,一直到羞怯寡言、容易脸红的查尔斯·汉密尔顿,即媚兰的哥哥。他们会聚在她周围,像蜜蜂围着蜂房一样,而且艾希礼也一定会被吸引从媚兰那边跑过来,加入这个崇拜她的圈子。然后,她当然要耍点手腕,按排他离开那一伙,单独同她待几分钟。她希望一切都会进行得那样顺利,要不然就困难了。可是,如果艾希礼不首先行动起来呢,那她就只好干脆自己动手了。 待到他们终于单独在一起时,他对于别的男人挤在她周围那番情景当然记忆犹新,当然会深深感到他们每个人确实很想要她,于是他便会流露出那种悲伤绝望的神色。那时她要叫他发现,尽管受到那么多人爱慕,她在世界上却只喜欢他一个人,这样他便会重新愉快起来。她只要又娇媚又含蓄地承认了这一点,她便会显得身价百倍,更叫人看重了。当然,她要以一种很高尚的姿态来做这些。她连做梦也不会公然对他说她爱他----这是绝对不行的啊!不过,究竟用什么样的态度告诉他,这只是枝节问题,根本用不着太操心。她以前不知道处理过多少这样的场面,现在再来一次就是了。 躺在床上,她全身沐浴着朦胧的月光,心里揣摩着通盘的情景。她仿佛看见他明白真正爱他时脸上流露的那种又惊又喜的表情,还仿佛听见他身她求婚时要说的那番话。 自然,那时她就得说,既然一个男人已经跟别的姑娘订婚,她便根本谈不上同他结婚了,不过他会坚持不放,最后她只得让自己说服了。于是他们决定当天下午逃到琼斯博罗去,并且----瞧,明天晚上这时候她也许已经是艾希礼·威尔克斯夫人了! 她这时索性翻身坐起来,双手紧抱着膝盖,一味神往地想象着,有好一会俨然做起艾希礼·威尔克斯夫人----艾希礼的新娘来了!接着,一丝凉意掠过她的心头。假如事情不照这个样子发展呢?假如艾希礼并不恳求她一起逃走呢?她断然把这个想法从心里推出去了。 “现在我不去想它,"她坚定地说。"要是我现在就想到这一点,它便会推翻我的整套计划。没有任何理由不让事情按照我所要求的方式去发展----要是他爱我的话。而我知道他是爱我的!"她抬起下巴,月光下闪烁着那双暗淡而带黑圈的眼睛。爱伦从没告诉过她愿望和实瑞是两件不同的事;生活也没教育过她捷足者不一定先登。她躺在银白的月色中怀着高涨的勇气,设想自己的计划,这个计划出自一个16岁的姑娘,那时她已过惯了惬意的日子,认为根本不可能有什么失败,认为只要有一件新的衣裳和一张清舶的面孔当武器,就能击溃命运! |
CHAPTER III ELLEN O’HARA was thirty-two years old, and, according to the standards of her day, she was a middle-aged woman, one who had borne six children and buried three. She was a tall woman, standing a head higher than her fiery little husband, but she moved with such quiet grace in her swaying hoops that the height attracted no attention to itself. Her neck, rising from the black taffeta sheath of her basque, was creamy-skinned, rounded and slender, and it seemed always tilted slightly backward by the weight of her luxuriant hair in its net at the back of her head. From her French mother, whose parents had fled Haiti in the Revolution of 1791, had come her slanting dark eyes, shadowed by inky lashes, and her black hair; and from her father, a soldier of Napoleon, she had her long straight nose and her square-cut jaw that was softened by the gentle curving of her cheeks. But only from life could Ellen’s face have acquired its look of pride that had no haughtiness, its graciousness, its melancholy and its utter lack of humor. She would have been a strikingly beautiful woman had there been any glow in her eyes, any responsive warmth in her smile or any spontaneity in her voice that fell with gentle melody on the ears of her family and her servants. She spoke in the soft slurring voice of the coastal Georgian, liquid of vowels, kind to consonants and with the barest trace of French accent. It was a voice never raised in command to a servant or reproof to a child but a voice that was obeyed instantly at Tara, where her husband’s blustering and roaring were quietly disregarded. As far back as Scarlett could remember, her mother had always been the same, her voice soft and sweet whether in praising or in reproving, her manner efficient and unruffled despite the daily emergencies of Gerald’s turbulent household, her spirit always calm and her back unbowed, even in the deaths of her three baby sons. Scarlett had never seen her mother’s back touch the back of any chair on which she sat. Nor had she ever seen her sit down without a bit of needlework in her hands, except at mealtime, while attending the sick or while working at the bookkeeping of the plantation. It was delicate embroidery if company were present, but at other times her hands were occupied with Gerald’s ruffled shirts, the girls’ dresses or garments for the slaves. Scarlett could not imagine her mother’s hands without her gold thimble or her rustling figure unaccompanied by the small negro girl whose sole function in life was to remove basting threads and carry the rosewood sewing box from room to room, as Ellen moved about the house superintending the cooking, the cleaning and the wholesale clothes-making for the plantation. She had never seen her mother stirred from her austere placidity, nor her personal appointments anything but perfect, no matter what the hour of day or night. When Ellen was dressing for a ball or for guests or even to go to Jonesboro for Court Day, it frequently required two hours, two maids and Mammy to turn her out to her own satisfaction; but her swift toilets in times of emergency were amazing. Scarlett, whose room lay across the hall from her mother’s, knew from babyhood the soft sound of scurrying bare black feet on the hardwood floor in the hours of dawn, the urgent tappings on her mother’s door, and the muffled, frightened negro voices that whispered of sickness and birth and death in the long row of whitewashed cabins in the quarters. As a child, she often had crept to the door and, peeping through the tiniest crack, had seen Ellen emerge from the dark room, where Gerald’s snores were rhythmic and untroubled, into the flickering light of an upheld candle, her medicine case under her arm, her hair smoothed neatly place, and no button on her basque unlooped. It had always been so soothing to Scarlett to hear her mother whisper, firmly but compassionately, as she tiptoed down the hall: “Hush, not so loudly. You will wake Mr. O’Hara. They are not sick enough to die.” Yes, it was good to creep back into bed and know that Ellen was abroad in the night and everything was right. In the mornings, after all-night sessions at births and deaths, when old Dr. Fontaine and young Dr. Fontaine were both out on calls and could not be found to help her, Ellen presided at the breakfast table as usual, her dark eyes circled with weariness but her voice and manner revealing none of the strain. There was a steely quality under her stately gentleness that awed the whole household, Gerald as well as the girls, though he would have died rather than admit it. Sometimes when Scarlett tiptoed at night to kiss her tall mother’s cheek, she looked up at the mouth with its too short, too tender upper lip, a mouth too easily hurt by the world, and wondered if it had ever curved in silly girlish giggling or whispered secrets through long nights to intimate girl friends. But no, that wasn’t possible. Mother had always been just as she was, a pillar of strength, a fount of wisdom, the one person who knew the answers to everything. But Scarlett was wrong, for, years before, Ellen Robillard of Savannah had giggled as inexplicably as any fifteen-year-old in that charming coastal city and whispered the long nights through with friends, exchanging confidences, telling all secrets but one. That was the year when Gerald O’Hara, twenty-eight years older than she, came into her life—the year, too, when youth and her black-eyed cousin, Philippe Robillard, went out of it. For when Philippe, with his snapping eyes and his wild ways, left Savannah forever, he took with him the glow that was in Ellen’s heart and left for the bandy-legged little Irishman who married her only a gentle shell. But that was enough for Gerald, overwhelmed at his unbelievable luck in actually marrying her. And if anything was gone from her, he never missed it. Shrewd man that he was, he knew that it was no less than a miracle that he, an Irishman with nothing of family and wealth to recommend him, should win the daughter of one of the wealthiest and proudest families on the Coast. For Gerald was a self-made man. Gerald had come to America from Ireland when he was twenty-one. He had come hastily, as many a better and worse Irishman before and since, with the clothes he had on his back, two shillings above his passage money and a price on his head that he felt was larger than his misdeed warranted. There was no Orangeman this side of hell worth a hundred pounds to the British government or to the devil himself; but if the government felt so strongly about the death of an English absentee landlord’s rent agent, it was time for Gerald O’Hara to be leaving and leaving suddenly. True, he had called the rent agent “a bastard of an Orangeman,” but that, according to Gerald’s way of looking at it, did not give the man any right to insult him by whistling the opening bars of “The Boyne Water.” The Battle of the Boyne had been fought more than a hundred years before, but, to the O’Haras and their neighbors, it might have been yesterday when their hopes and their dreams, as well as their lands and wealth, went off in the same cloud of dust that enveloped a frightened and fleeing Stuart prince, leaving William of Orange and his hated troops with their orange cockades to cut down the Irish adherents of the Stuarts. For this and other reasons, Gerald’s family was not inclined to view the fatal outcome of this quarrel as anything very serious, except for the fact that it was charged with serious consequences. For years, the O’Haras had been in bad odor with the English constabulary on account of suspected activities against the government, and Gerald was not the first O’Hara to take his foot in his hand and quit Ireland between dawn and morning. His two oldest brothers, James and Andrew, he hardly remembered, save as close-lipped youths who came and went at odd hours of the night on mysterious errands or disappeared for weeks at a time, to their mother’s gnawing anxiety. They had come to America years before, after the discovery of a small arsenal of rifles buried under the O’Hara pigsty. Now they were successful merchants in Savannah, “though the dear God alone knows where that may be,” as their mother always interpolated when mentioning the two oldest of her male brood, and it was to them that young Gerald was sent. He left home with his mother’s hasty kiss on his cheek and her fervent Catholic blessing in his ears, and his father’s parting admonition, “Remember who ye are and don’t be taking nothing off no man.” His five tall brothers gave him good-by with admiring but slightly patronizing smiles, for Gerald was the baby and the little one of a brawny family. His five brothers and their father stood six feet and over and broad in proportion, but little Gerald, at twenty-one, knew that five feet four and a half inches was as much as the Lord in His wisdom was going to allow him. It was like Gerald that he never wasted regrets on his lack of height and never found it an obstacle to his acquisition of anything he wanted. Rather, it was Gerald’s compact smallness that made him what he was, for he had learned early that little people must be hardy to survive among large ones. And Gerald was hardy. His tall brothers were a grim, quiet lot, in whom the family tradition of past glories, lost forever, rankled in unspoken hate and crackled out in bitter humor. Had Gerald been brawny, he would have gone the way of the other O’Haras and moved quietly and darkly among the rebels against the government But Gerald was “loud-mouthed and bullheaded,” as his mother fondly phrased it, hair trigger of temper, quick with his fists and possessed of a chip on his shoulder so large as to be almost visible to the naked eye. He swaggered among the tall O’Haras like a strutting bantam in a barnyard of giant Cochin roosters, and they loved him, baited him affectionately to hear him roar and hammered on him with their large fists no more than was necessary to keep a baby brother in his proper place. If the educational equipment which Gerald brought to America was scant, he did not even know it. Nor would he have cared if he had been told. His mother had taught him to read and to write a clear hand. He was adept at ciphering. And there his book knowledge stopped. The only Latin he knew was the responses of the Mass and the only history the manifold wrongs of Ireland. He knew no poetry save that of Moore and no music except the songs of Ireland that had come down through the years. While he entertained the liveliest respect for those who had more book learning than he, he never felt his own lack. And what need had he of these things in a new country where the most ignorant of bogtrotters had made great fortunes? in this country which asked only that a man be strong and unafraid of work? Nor did James and Andrew, who took him into their store in Savannah, regret his lack of education. His clear hand, his accurate figures and his shrewd ability in bargaining won their respect, where a knowledge of literature and a fine appreciation of music, had young Gerald possessed them, would have moved them to snorts of contempt. America, in the early years of the century, had been kind to the Irish. James and Andrew, who had begun by hauling goods in covered wagons from Savannah to Georgia’s inland towns, had prospered into a store of their own, and Gerald prospered with them. He liked the South, and he soon became, in his own opinion, a Southerner. There was much about the South—and Southerners—that he would never comprehend; but, with the wholeheartedness that was his nature, he adopted its ideas and customs, as he understood them, for his own—poker and horse racing, red-hot politics and the code duello, States’ Rights and damnation to all Yankees, slavery and King Cotton, contempt for white trash and exaggerated courtesy to women. He even learned to chew tobacco. There was no need for him to acquire a good head for whisky, he had been born with one. But Gerald remained Gerald. His habits of living and his ideas changed, but his manners he would not change, even had he been able to change them. He admired the drawling elegance of the wealthy rice and cotton planters, who rode into Savannah from their moss-hung kingdoms, mounted on thoroughbred horses and followed by the carriages of their equally elegant ladies and the wagons of their slaves. But Gerald could never attain elegance. Their lazy, blurred voices fell pleasantly on his ears, but his own brisk brogue clung to his tongue. He liked the casual grace with which they conducted affairs of importance, risking a fortune, a plantation or a slave on the turn of a card and writing off their losses with careless good humor and no more ado than when they scattered pennies to pickaninnies. But Gerald had known poverty, and he could never learn to lose money with good humor or good grace. They were a pleasant race, these coastal Georgians, with their soft-voiced, quick rages and their charming inconsistencies, and Gerald liked them. But there was a brisk and restless vitality about the young Irishman, fresh from a country where winds blew wet and chill, where misty swamps held no fevers, that set him apart from these indolent gentle-folk of semi-tropical weather and malarial marshes. From them he learned what he found useful, and the rest he dismissed. He found poker the most useful of all Southern customs, poker and a steady head for whisky; and it was his natural aptitude for cards and amber liquor that brought to Gerald two of his three most prized possessions, his valet and his plantation. The other was his wife, and he could only attribute her to the mysterious kindness of God. The, valet. Pork by name, shining black, dignified and trained in all the arts of sartorial elegance, was the result of an all-night poker game with a planter from St. Simons Island, whose courage in a bluff equaled Gerald’s but whose head for New Orleans rum did not. Though Pork’s former owner later offered to buy him back at twice his value, Gerald obstinately refused, for the possession of his first slave, and that slave the “best damn valet on the Coast,” was the first step upward toward his heart’s desire, Gerald wanted to be a slave owner and a landed gentleman. His mind was made up that he was not going to spend all of his days, like Tames and Andrew, in bargaining, or all his nights, by candlelight, over long columns of figures. He felt keenly, as his brothers did not, the social stigma attached to those “in trade.” Gerald wanted to be a planter. With the deep hunger of an Irishman who has been a tenant on the lands his people once had owned and hunted, he wanted to see his own acres stretching green before his eyes. With a ruthless singleness of purpose, he desired his own house, his own plantation, his own horse, his own slaves. And here in this new country, safe from the twin perils of the land he had left—taxation that ate up crops and barns and the ever-present threat of sudden confiscation—he intended to have them. But having that ambition and bringing it to realization were two different matters, he discovered as time went by. Coastal Georgia was too firmly held by an entrenched aristocracy for him ever to hope to win the place he intended to have. Then the hand of Fate and a hand of poker combined to give him the plantation which he afterwards called Tara, and at the same time moved him out of the Coast into the upland country of north Georgia. It was in a saloon in Savannah, on a hot night in spring, when the chance conversation of a stranger sitting near by made Gerald prick up his ears. The stranger, a native of Savannah, had just returned after twelve years in the inland country. He had been one of the winners in the land lottery conducted by the State to divide up the vast area in middle Georgia, ceded by the Indians the year before Gerald came to America. He had gone up there and established a plantation; but, now the house had burned down, he was tired of the “accursed place” and would be most happy to get it off his hands. Gerald, his mind never free of the thought of owning a plantation of his own, arranged an introduction, and his interest grew as the stranger told how the northern section of the state was filling up with newcomers from the Carolinas and Virginia. Gerald had lived in Savannah long enough to acquire a viewpoint of the Coast—that all of the rest of the state was backwoods, with an Indian lurking in every thicket. In transacting business for O’Hara Brothers, he had visited Augusta, a hundred miles up the Savannah River, and he had traveled inland far enough to visit the old towns westward from that city. He knew that section to be as well settled as the Coast, but from the stranger’s description, his plantation was more than two hundred and fifty miles inland from Savannah to the north and west, and not many miles south of the Chattahoochee River. Gerald knew that northward beyond that stream the land was still held by the Cherokees, so it was with amazement that he heard the stranger jeer at suggestions of trouble with the Indians and narrate how thriving towns were growing up and plantations prospering in the new country. An hour later when the conversation began to lag, Gerald, with a guile that belied the wide innocence of his bright blue eyes, proposed a game. As the night wore on and the drinks went round, there came a time when all the others in the game laid down their hands and Gerald and the stranger were battling alone. The stranger shoved in all his chips and followed with the deed to his plantation. Gerald shoved in all his chips and laid on top of them his wallet. If the money it contained happened to belong to the firm of O’Hara Brothers, Gerald’s conscience was not sufficiently troubled to confess it before Mass the following morning. He knew what he wanted, and when Gerald wanted something he gained it by taking the most direct route. Moreover, such was his faith in his destiny and four deuces that he never for a moment wondered just how the money would be paid back should a higher hand be laid down across the table. “It’s no bargain you’re getting and I am glad not to have to pay more taxes on the place,” sighed the possessor of an “ace full,” as he called for pen and ink. “The big house burned a year ago and the fields are growing up in brush and seedling pine. But it’s yours.” “Never mix cards and whisky unless you were weaned on Irish poteen,” Gerald told Pork gravely the same evening, as Pork assisted him to bed. And the valet, who had begun to attempt a brogue out of admiration for his new master, made requisite answer in a combination of Geechee and County Meath that would have puzzled anyone except those two alone. The muddy Flint River, running silently between walls of pine and water oak covered with tangled vines, wrapped about Gerald’s new land like a curving arm and embraced it on two sides. To Gerald, standing on the small knoll where the house had been, this tall barrier of green was as visible and pleasing an evidence of ownership as though it were a fence that he himself had built to mark his own. He stood on the blackened foundation stones of the burned building, looked down the long avenue of trees leading toward the road and swore lustily, with a joy too deep for thankful prayer. These twin lines of somber trees were his, his the abandoned lawn, waist high in weeds under white-starred young magnolia trees. The uncultivated fields, studded with tiny pines and underbrush, that stretched their rolling red-clay surface away into the distance on four sides belonged to Gerald O’Hara—were all his because he had an unbefuddled Irish head and the courage to stake everything on a hand of cards. Gerald closed his eyes and, in the stillness of the unworked acres, he felt that he had come home. Here under his feet would rise a house of whitewashed brick. Across the road would be new rail fences, inclosing fat cattle and blooded horses, and the red earth that rolled down the hillside to the rich river bottom land would gleam white as eiderdown in the sun—cotton; acres and acres of cotton! The fortunes of the O’Haras would rise again. With his own small stake, what he could borrow from his unenthusiastic brothers and a neat sum from mortgaging the land, Gerald bought his first field hands and came to Tara to live in bachelor solitude in the four-room overseer’s house, till such a time as the white walls of Tara should rise. He cleared the fields and planted cotton and borrowed more money from James and Andrew to buy more slaves. The O’Haras were a clannish tribe, clinging to one another in prosperity as well as in adversity, not for any overweening family affection but because they had learned through grim years that to survive a family must present an unbroken front to the world. They lent Gerald the money and, in the years that followed, the money came back to them with interest. Gradually the plantation widened out, as Gerald bought more acres lying near him, and in time the white house became a reality instead of a dream. It was built by slave labor, a clumsy sprawling building that crowned the rise of ground overlooking the green incline of pasture land running down to the river; and it pleased Gerald greatly, for, even when new, it wore a look of mellowed years. The old oaks, which had seen Indians pass under their limbs, hugged the house closely with their great trunks and towered their branches over the roof in dense shade. The lawn, reclaimed from weeds, grew thick with clover and Bermuda grass, and Gerald saw to it that it was well kept. From the avenue of cedars to the row of white cabins in the slave quarters, there was an air of solidness, of stability and permanence about Tara, and whenever Gerald galloped around the bend in the road and saw his own roof rising through green branches, his heart swelled with pride as though each sight of it were the first sight. He had done it all, little, hard-headed, blustering Gerald. Gerald, was on excellent terms with all his neighbors in the County, except the MacIntoshs whose land adjoined his on the left and the Slatterys whose meager three acres stretched on his right along the swamp bottoms between the river and John Wilkes’ plantation. The MacIntoshs were Scotch-Irish and Orangemen and, had they possessed all the saintly qualities of the Catholic calendar, this ancestry would have damned them forever in Gerald’s eyes. True, they had lived in Georgia for seventy years and, before that, had spent a generation in the Carolinas; but the first of the family who set foot on American shores had come from Ulster, and that was enough for Gerald. They were a close-mouthed and stiff-necked family, who kept strictly to themselves and intermarried with their Carolina relatives, and Gerald was not alone in disliking them, for the County people were neighborly and sociable and none too tolerant of anyone lacking in those same qualities. Rumors of Abolitionist sympathies did not enhance the popularity of the Macintoshes. Old Angus had never manumitted a single slave and had committed the unpardonable social breach of selling some of his negroes to passing slave traders en route to the cane fields of Louisiana, but the rumors persisted. “He’s an Abolitionist, no doubt,” observed Gerald to John Wilkes. “But, in an Orangeman, when a principle comes up against Scotch tightness, the principle fares ill.” The Slatterys were another affair. Being poor white, they were not even accorded the” grudging respect that Angus Macintosh’s dour independence wrung from neighboring families. Old Slattery, who clung persistently to his few acres, in spite of repeated offers from Gerald and John Wilkes, was shiftless and whining. His wife was a snarly-haired woman, sickly and washed-out of appearance, the mother of a brood of sullen and rabbity-looking children—a brood which was increased regularly every year. Tom Slattery owned no slaves, and he and his two oldest boys spasmodically worked their few acres of cotton, while the wife and younger children tended what was supposed to be a vegetable garden. But, somehow, the cotton always failed, and the garden, due to Mrs. Slattery’s constant childbearing, seldom furnished enough to feed her flock. The sight of Tom Slattery dawdling on his neighbors’ porches, begging cotton seed for planting or a side of bacon to “tide him over,” was a familiar one. Slattery hated his neighbors with what little energy he possessed, sensing their contempt beneath their courtesy, and especially did he hate “rich folks’ uppity niggers.” The house negroes of the County considered themselves superior to white trash, and their unconcealed scorn stung him, while their more secure position in life stirred his envy. By contrast with his own miserable existence, they were well-fed, well-clothed and looked after in sickness and old age. They were proud of the good names of their owners and, for the most part, proud to belong to people who were quality, while he was despised by all. Tom Slattery could have sold his farm for three times its value to any of the planters in the County. They would have considered it money well spent to rid the community of an eyesore, but he was well satisfied to remain and to subsist miserably on the proceeds of a bale of cotton a year and the charity of his neighbors. With all the rest of the County, Gerald was on terms of amity and some intimacy. The Wilkeses, the Calverts, the Tarletons, the Fontaines, all smiled when the small figure on the big white horse galloped up their driveways, smiled and signaled for tall glasses in which a pony of Bourbon had been poured over a teaspoon of sugar and a sprig of crushed mint. Gerald was likable, and the neighbors learned in time what the children, negroes and dogs discovered at first sight, that a kind heart, a ready and sympathetic ear and an open pocketbook lurked just behind his. bawling voice and his truculent manner. His arrival was always amid a bedlam of hounds barking and small black children shouting as they raced to meet him, quarreling for the privilege of holding his horse and squirming and grinning under his good-natured insults. The white children clamored to sit on his knee and be trotted, while he denounced to their elders the infamy of Yankee politicians; the daughters of his friends took him into their confidence about their love affairs, and the youths of the neighborhood, fearful of confessing debts of honor upon the carpets of their fathers, found him a friend in need. “So, you’ve been owning this for a month, you young rascal!” he would shout “And, in God’s name, why haven’t you been asking me for the money before this?” His rough manner of speech was too well known to give offense, and it only made the young men grin sheepishly and reply: “Well, sir, I hated to trouble you, and my father—” “Your father’s a good man, and no denying it, but strict, and so take this and let’s be hearing no more of it” The planters’ ladies were the last to capitulate. But, when Mrs. Wilkes, “a great lady and with a rare gift for silence,” as Gerald characterized her, told her husband one evening, after Gerald’s horse had pounded down the driveway. “He has a rough tongue, but he is a gentleman,” Gerald had definitely arrived. He did not know that he had taken nearly ten years to arrive, for it never occurred to him that his neighbors had eyed him askance at first. In his own mind, there had never been any doubt that he belonged, from the moment he first set foot on Tara. When Gerald was forty-three, so thickset of body and florid of face that he looked like a hunting squire out of a sporting print, it came to him that Tara, dear though it was, and the County folk, with their open hearts and open houses, were not enough. He wanted a wife. Tara cried out for a mistress. The fat cook, a yard negro elevated by necessity to the kitchen, never had the meals on time, and the chambermaid, formerly a field hand, let dust accumulate on the furniture and never seemed to have clean linen on hand, so that the arrival of guests was always the occasion of much stirring and to-do. Pork, the only trained house negro on the place, had general supervision over the other servants, but even he had grown slack and careless after several years of exposure to Gerald’s happy-go-lucky mode of living. As valet, he kept Gerald’s bedroom in order, and, as butler, he served the meals with dignity and style, but otherwise he pretty well let matters follow their own course. With unerring African instinct, the negroes had all discovered that Gerald had a loud bark and no bite at all, and they took shameless advantage of him. The air was always thick with threats of selling slaves south and of direful whippings, but there never had been a slave sold from Tara and only one whipping, and that administered for not grooming down Gerald’s pet horse after, a long day’s hunting. Gerald’s sharp blue eyes noticed how efficiently his neighbors’ houses were run and with what ease the smooth-haired wives in rustling skirts managed their servants. He had no knowledge of the dawn-till-midnight activities of these women, chained to supervision of cooking, nursing, sewing and laundering. He only saw the outward results, and those results impressed him. The urgent need of a wife became clear to him one morning when he was dressing to ride to town for Court Day. Pork brought forth his favorite ruffled shirt, so inexpertly mended by the chambermaid as to be unwearable by anyone except his valet “Mist’ Gerald,” said Pork, gratefully rolling up the shirt as Gerald fumed, “whut you needs is a wife, and a wife whut has got plen’y of house niggers.” Gerald upbraided Pork for his impertinence, hut he knew that he was right He wanted a wife and he wanted children and, if he did not acquire them soon, it would be too late. But he was not going to marry just anyone, as Mr. Calvert had done, taking to wife the Yankee governess of his motherless children. His wife must be a lady and a lady of blood, with as many airs and graces as Mrs. Wilkes and the ability to manage Tara as well as Mrs. Wilkes ordered her own domain. But there were two difficulties in the way of marriage into the County families. The first was the scarcity of girls of marriageable age. The second, and more serious one, was that Gerald was a “new man,” despite his nearly ten years’ residence, and a foreigner. No one knew anything about his family. While the society of up-country Georgia was not so impregnable as that of the Coast aristocrats, no family wanted a daughter to wed a man about whose grandfather nothing was known. Gerald knew that despite the genuine liking of the County men with whom he hunted, drank and talked politics there was hardly one whose daughter he could marry. And he did not intend to have it gossiped about over supper tables that this, that or the other father had regretfully refused to let Gerald O’Hara pay court to his daughter. This knowledge did not make Gerald feel inferior to his neighbors: Nothing could ever make Gerald feel that he was inferior in any way to anyone. It was merely a quaint custom of the County that daughters only married into families who had lived in the South much longer than twenty-two years, had owned land and slaves and been addicted only to the fashionable vices during that time. “Pack up. We’re going to Savannah,” he told Pork. “And if I hear you say ‘Whist!’ or ‘Faith!’ but once, it’s selling you I’ll be doing, for they are words I seldom say meself.” James and Andrew might have some advice to offer on this subject of marriage, and there might be daughters among their old friends who would both meet his requirements and find him acceptable as a husband. James and Andrew listened to his story patiently but they gave him little encouragement. They had no Savannah relatives to whom they might look for assistance, for they had been married when they came to America. And the daughters of their old friends had long since married and were raising small children of their own. “You’re not a rich man and you haven’t a great family,” said James. “I’ve made me money and I can make a great family. And I won’t be marrying just anyone.” “You fly high,” observed Andrew, dryly. But they did their best for Gerald. James and Andrew were old men and they stood well in Savannah. They had many friends, and for a month they carried Gerald from home to home, to suppers, dances and picnics. “There’s only one who takes me eye,” Gerald said finally. “And she not even born when I landed here.” “And who is it takes your eye?” “Miss Ellen Robillard,” said Gerald, trying to speak casually, for the slightly tilting dark eyes of Ellen Robillard had taken more than his eye. Despite a mystifying listlessness of manner, so strange in a girl of fifteen, she charmed him. Moreover, there was a haunting look of despair about her that went to his heart and made him more gentle with her than he had ever been with any person in all the world. “And you old enough to be her father!” “And me in me prime!” cried Gerald stung. James spoke gently. “Jerry, there’s no girl in Savannah you’d have less chance of marrying. Her father is a Robillard, and those French are proud as Lucifer. And her mother—God rest her soul—was a very great lady.” “I care not,” said Gerald heatedly. “Besides, her mother is dead, and old man Robillard likes me.” “As a man, yes, but as a son-in-law, no.” “The girl wouldn’t have you anyway,” interposed Andrew. “She’s been in love with that wild buck of a cousin of hers, Philippe Robillard, for a year now, despite her family being at her morning and night to give him up.” “He’s been gone to Louisiana this month now,” said Gerald. “And how do you know?” “I know,” answered Gerald, who did not care to disclose that Pork had supplied this valuable bit of information, or that Philippe had departed for the West at the express desire of his family. “And I do not think she’s been so much in love with him that she won’t forget him. Fifteen is too young to know much about love.” “They’d rather have that breakneck cousin for her than you.” So, James and Andrew were as startled as anyone when the news came out that the daughter of Pierre Robillard was to marry the little Irishman from up the country. Savannah buzzed behind its doors and speculated about Philippe Robillard, who had gone West, but the gossiping brought no answer. Why the loveliest of the Robillard daughters should marry a loud-voiced, red-faced little man who came hardly up to her ears remained a mystery to all. Gerald himself never quite knew how it all came about. He only knew that a miracle had happened. And, for once in his life, he was utterly humble when Ellen, very white but very calm, put a light hand on his arm and said: “I will marry you, Mr. O’Hara.” The thunderstruck Robillards knew the answer in part, but only Ellen and her mammy ever knew the whole story of the night when the girl sobbed till the dawn like a broken-hearted child and rose up in the morning a woman with her mind made up. With foreboding, Mammy had brought her young mistress a small package, addressed in a strange hand from New Orleans, a package containing a miniature of Ellen, which she flung to the floor with a cry, four letters in her own handwriting to Philippe Robillard, and a brief letter from a New Orleans priest, announcing the death of her cousin in a barroom brawl. “They drove him away. Father and Pauline and Eulalie. They drove him away. I hate them. I hate them all. I never want to see them again. I want to get away. I will go away where I’ll never see them again, or this town, or anyone who reminds me of—of—him.” And when the night was nearly spent, Mammy, who had cried herself out over her mistress’ dark head, protested, “But, honey, you kain do dat!” “I will do it. He is a kind man. I will do it or go into the convent at Charleston.” It was the threat of the convent that finally won the assent of bewildered and heart-stricken Pierre Robillard. He was staunchly Presbyterian, even though his family were Catholic, and the thought of his daughter becoming a nun was even worse than that of her marrying Gerald O’Hara. After all, the man had nothing against him but a lack of family. So, Ellen, no longer Robillard, turned her back on Savannah, never to see it again, and with a middle-aged husband, Mammy, and twenty “house niggers” journeyed toward Tara. The next year, their first child was born and they named her Katie Scarlett, after Gerald’s mother. Gerald was disappointed, for he had wanted a son, but he nevertheless was pleased enough over his small black-haired daughter to serve rum to every slave at Tara and to get roaringly, happily drunk himself. If Ellen had ever regretted her sudden decision to marry him, no one ever knew it, certainly not Gerald, who almost burst with pride whenever he looked at her. She had put Savannah and its memories behind her when she left that gently mannered city by the sea, and, from the moment of her arrival in the County, north Georgia was her home. When she departed from her father’s house forever, she had left a home whose lines were as beautiful and flowing as a woman’s body, as a ship in full sail; a pale pink stucco house built in the French colonial style, set high from the ground in a dainty manner, approached by swirling stairs, banistered with wrought iron as delicate as lace; a dim, rich house, gracious but aloof. She had left not only that graceful dwelling but also the entire civilization that was behind the building of it, and she found herself in a world that was as strange and different as if she had crossed a continent. Here in north Georgia was a rugged section held by a hardy people. High up on the plateau at the foot of the Blue Ridge Mountains, she saw rolling red hills wherever she looked, with huge outcroppings of the underlying granite and gaunt pines towering somberly everywhere. It all seemed wild and untamed to her coast-bred eyes accustomed to the quiet jungle beauty of the sea islands draped in their gray moss and tangled green, the white stretches of beach hot beneath a semitropic sun, the long flat vistas of sandy land studded with palmetto and palm. This was a section that knew the chill of winter, as well as the heat of summer, and there was a vigor and energy in the people that was strange to her. They were a kindly people, courteous, generous, filled with abounding good nature, but sturdy, virile, easy to anger. The people of the Coast which she had left might pride themselves on taking all their affairs, even their duels and their feuds, with a careless air but these north Georgia people had a streak of violence in them. On the coast, life had mellowed—here it was young and lusty and new. All the people Ellen had known in Savannah might have been cast from the same mold, so similar were their view points and traditions, but here was a variety of people. North Georgia’s settlers were coming in from many different places, from other parts of Georgia, from the Carolinas and Virginia, from Europe and the North. Some of them, like Gerald, were new people seeking their fortunes. Some, like Ellen, were members of old families who had found life intolerable in their former homes and sought haven in a distant land. Many had moved for no reason at all, except that the restless blood of pioneering fathers still quickened in their veins. These people, drawn from many different places and with many different backgrounds, gave the whole life of the County an informality that was new to Ellen, an informality to which she never quite accustomed herself. She instinctively knew how Coast people would act in any circumstance. There was never any telling what north Georgians would do. And, quickening all of the affairs of the section, was the high tide of prosperity then rolling over the South. All of the world was crying out for cotton, and the new land of the County, unworn and fertile, produced it abundantly. Cotton was the heartbeat of the section, the planting and the picking were the diastole and systole of the red earth. Wealth came out of the curving furrows, and arrogance came too—arrogance built on green bushes and the acres of fleecy white. If cotton could make them rich in one generation, how much richer they would be in the next! This certainty of the morrow gave zest and enthusiasm to life, and the County people enjoyed life with a heartiness that Ellen could never understand. They had money enough and slaves enough to give them time to play, and they liked to play. They seemed never too busy to drop work for a fish fry, a hunt or a horse race, and scarcely a week went by without its barbecue or ball. Ellen never would, or could, quite become one of them—she had left too much of herself in Savannah—but she respected them and, in time, learned to admire the frankness and forthrightness of these people, who had few reticences and who valued a man for what he was. She became the best-loved neighbor in the County. She was a thrifty and kind mistress, a good mother and a devoted wife. The heartbreak and selflessness that she would have dedicated to the Church were devoted instead to the service of her child, her household and the man who had taken her out of Savannah and its memories and had never asked any questions. When Scarlett was a year old, and more healthy and vigorous than a girl baby had any right to be, in Mammy’s opinion, Ellen’s second child, named Susan Elinor, but always called Suellen, was born, and in due time came Carreen, listed in the family Bible as Caroline Irene. Then followed three little boys, each of whom died before he had learned to walk—three little boys who now lay under the twisted cedars in the burying ground a hundred yards from the house, beneath three stones, each bearing the name of “Gerald O’Hara, Jr.” From the day when Ellen first came to Tara, the place had been transformed. If she was only fifteen years old, she was nevertheless ready for the responsibilities of the mistress of a plantation. Before marriage, young girls must be, above all other things, sweet, gentle, beautiful and ornamental, but, after marriage, they were expected to manage households that numbered a hundred people or more, white and black, and they were trained with that in view. Ellen had been given this preparation for marriage which any well-brought-up young lady received, and she also had Mammy, who could galvanize the most shiftless negro into energy. She quickly brought order, dignity and grace into Gerald’s household, and she gave Tara a beauty it had never had before. The house had been built according to no architectural plan whatever, with extra rooms added where and when it seemed convenient, but, with Ellen’s care and attention, it gained a charm that made up for its lack of design. The avenue of cedars leading from the main road to the house—that avenue of cedars without which no Georgia planter’s home could be complete—had a cool dark shadiness that gave a brighter tinge, by contrast, to the green of the other trees. The wistaria tumbling over the verandas showed bright against the whitewashed brick, and it joined with the pink crêpe myrtle bushes by the door and the white-blossomed magnolias in the yard to disguise some of the awkward lines of the house. In spring time and summer, the Bermuda grass and clover on the lawn became emerald, so enticing an emerald that it presented an irresistible temptation to the flocks of turkeys and white geese that were supposed to roam only the regions in the rear of the house. The elders of the flocks continually led stealthy advances into the front yard, lured on by the green of the grass and the luscious promise of the cape jessamine buds and the zinnia beds. Against their depredations, a small black sentinel was stationed on the front porch. Armed with a ragged towel, the little negro boy sitting on the steps was part of the picture of Tara—and an unhappy one, for he was forbidden to chunk the fowls and could only flap the towel at them and shoo them. Ellen set dozens of little black boys to this task, the first position of responsibility a male slave had at Tara. After they had passed their tenth year, they were sent to old Daddy the plantation cobbler to learn his trade, or to Amos the wheelwright and carpenter, or Phillip the cow man, or Cuffee the mule boy. If they showed no aptitude for any of these trades, they became field hands and, in the opinion of the negroes, they had lost their claim to any social standing at all. Ellen’s life was not easy, nor was it happy, but she did not expect life to be easy, and, if it was not happy, that was woman’s lot. It was a man’s world, and she accepted it as such. The man owned the property, and the woman managed it. The man took the credit for the management, and the woman praised his cleverness. The man roared like a bull when a splinter was in his finger, and the woman muffled the moans of childbirth, lest she disturb him. Men were rough of speech and often drunk. Women ignored the lapses of speech and put the drunkards to bed without bitter words. Men were rude and outspoken, women were always kind, gracious and forgiving. She had been reared in the tradition of great ladies, which had taught her how to carry her burden and still retain her charm, and she intended that her three daughters should be great ladies also. With her younger daughters, she had success, for Suellen was so anxious to be attractive she lent an attentive and obedient ear to her mother’s teachings, and Carreen was shy and easily led. But Scarlett, child of Gerald, found the road to ladyhood hard. To Mammy’s indignation, her preferred playmates were not her demure sisters or the well-brought-up Wilkes girls but the negro children on the plantation and the boys of the neighborhood, and she could climb a tree or throw a rock as well as any of them. Mammy was greatly perturbed that Ellen’s daughter should display such traits and frequently adjured her to “ack lak a lil lady.” But Ellen took a more tolerant and long-sighted view of the matter. She knew that from childhood playmates grew beaux in later years, and the first duty of a girl was to get married. She told herself that the child was merely full of life and there was still time in which to teach her the arts and graces of being attractive to men. To this end, Ellen and Mammy bent their efforts, and as Scarlett grew older she became an apt pupil in this subject, even though she learned little else. Despite a succession of governesses and two years at the near-by Fayetteville Female Academy, her education was sketchy, but no girl in the County danced more gracefully than she. She knew how to smile so that her dimples leaped, how to walk pigeon-toed so that her wide hoop skirts swayed entrancingly, how to look up into a man’s face and then drop her eyes and bat the lids rapidly so that she seemed a-tremble with gentle emotion. Most of all she learned how to conceal from men a sharp intelligence beneath a face as sweet and bland as a baby’s. Ellen, by soft-voiced admonition, and Mammy, by constant carping, labored to inculcate in her the qualities that would make her truly desirable as a wife. “You must be more gentle, dear, more sedate,” Ellen told her daughter. “You must not interrupt gentlemen when they are speaking, even if you do think you know more about matters than they do. Gentlemen do not like forward girls.” “Young misses whut frowns an pushes out dey chins an’ says ‘Ah will’ and ‘Ah woan’ mos’ gener’ly doan ketch husbands,” prophesied Mammy gloomily. “Young misses should cas’ down dey eyes an’ say, Well, suh, Ah mout’ an’ ‘Jes’ as you say, suh.’ ” Between them, they taught her all that a gentlewoman should know, but she learned only the outward signs of gentility. The inner grace from which these signs should spring, she never learned nor did she see any reason for learning it. Appearances were enough, for the appearances of ladyhood won her popularity and that was all she wanted. Gerald bragged that she was the belle of five counties, and with some truth, for she had received proposals from nearly all the young men in the neighborhood and many from places as far away as Atlanta and Savannah. At sixteen, thanks to Mammy and Ellen, she looked sweet, charming and giddy, but she was, in reality, self-willed, vain and obstinate. She had the easily stirred passions of her Irish father and nothing except the thinnest veneer of her mother’s unselfish and forbearing nature. Ellen never fully realized that it was only a veneer, for Scarlett always showed her best face to her mother, concealing her escapades, curbing her temper and appearing as sweet-natured as she could in Ellen’s presence, for her mother could shame her to tears with a reproachful glance. But Mammy was under no illusions about her and was constantly alert for breaks in the veneer. Mammy’s eyes were sharper than Ellen’s, and Scarlett could never recall in all her life having fooled Mammy for long. It was not that these two loving mentors deplored Scarlett’s high spirits, vivacity and charm. These were traits of which Southern women were proud. It was Gerald’s headstrong and impetuous nature in her that gave them concern, and they sometimes feared they would not be able to conceal her damaging qualities until she had made a good match. But Scarlett intended to marry—and marry Ashley—and she was willing to appear demure, pliable and scatterbrained, if those were the qualities that attracted men. Just why men should be this way, she did not know. She only knew that such methods worked. It never interested her enough to try to think out the reason for it, for she knew nothing of the inner workings of any human being’s mind, not even her own. She knew only that if she did or said thus-and-so, men would unerringly respond with the complementary thus-and-so. It was like a mathematical formula and no more difficult, for mathematics was the one subject that had come easy to Scarlett in her schooldays. If she knew little about men’s minds, she knew even less about the minds of women, for they interested her less. She had never had a girl friend, and she never felt any lack on that account. To her, all women, including her two sisters, were natural enemies in pursuit of the same prey—man. All women with the one exception of her mother. Ellen O’Hara was different, and Scarlett regarded her as something holy and apart from all the rest of humankind. When Scarlett was a child, she had confused her mother with the Virgin Mary, and now that she was older she saw no reason for changing her opinion. To her, Ellen represented the utter security that only Heaven or a mother can give. She knew that her mother was the embodiment of justice, truth, loving tenderness and profound wisdom—a great lady. Scarlett wanted very much to be like her mother. The only difficulty was that by being just and truthful and tender and unselfish, one missed most of the joys of life, and certainly many beaux. And life was too short to miss such pleasant things. Some day when she was married to Ashley and old, some day when she had time for it, she intended to be like Ellen. But, until then … 第三章 爱伦·奥哈拉现年32岁,依当时的标准已是个中年妇人,她生有六个孩子,但其中三个已经夭折。她高高的,比那位火爆性子的矮个儿丈夫高出一头,不过她的举止是那么文静,走起路来只见那条长裙子轻盈地摇摆,这样也就不显得怎么高了。她那奶酪色的脖颈圆圆的,细细的,从紧身上衣的黑绸圆领中端端正正地伸出来,但由于脑后那把戴着网套的丰盈秀发颇为浓重,便常常显得略后向仰。她母亲是法国人,是一对从1791年革命中逃亡到海地来的夫妇所生,她给爱伦遗传了这双在墨黑睫毛下略略倾斜的黑眼睛和这一头黑发。她父亲是拿破仑军队中的一名士兵,传给她一个长长的、笔直的鼻子和一个有棱有角的方颚,只不过后者在她两颊的柔美曲线的调和下显得不那么惹眼了。同时爱伦的脸也仅仅通过生活才养马了现在这副庄严而并不觉得傲慢的模样,这种优雅,这种忧郁而毫无幽默感的神态。 如果她的眼神中有一点焕发的光采,她的笑容中带有一点殷勤的温煦,她那使儿女和仆人听来感到轻柔的声音中有一点自然的韵味,那她便是一个非常漂亮的女人了。她说话用的是海滨佐治亚人那种柔和而有点含糊的口音,元音是流音,子音咬得不怎么准,略略带法语腔调。这是一种即使命令仆人或斥责儿女时也从不提高的声音,但也是在塔拉农场人人都随时服从的声音,而她的丈夫的大喊大叫在那里却经常被悄悄地忽略了。 从思嘉记得的最早时候起,她母亲便一直是这个样子,她的声音,无论在称赞或者责备别人时,总是那么柔和而甜蜜;她的态度,尽管杰拉尔德在纷纷扰扰的家事中经常要出点乱子,却始终是那么沉着,应付自如;她的精神总是平静的,脊背总是挺直的,甚至在她的三个幼儿夭折时也是这样。思嘉从没见过母亲坐着时将背靠在椅子背上,也从没见过她手里不拿点针线活儿便坐下来(除了吃饭),即使是陪伴病人或审核农场账目的时候。在有客人在场时,她手里是精巧的刺绣,别的时候则是缝制杰拉尔德的衬衫、女孩子的衣裳或农奴们的衣服。思嘉很难想象母亲手上不戴那个金顶针,或者她那一路啊啊啊啊的身影后面没有那个黑女孩,后者一生中唯一的任务是给她拆绷线,以及当爱伦为了检查烹饪、洗涤和大批的缝纫活儿而在满屋子四处乱跑动时,捧着那个红木针线拿儿从一个房间走到另一个房间。 思嘉从未见过母亲庄重安谦的神态被打扰的时候,她个人的衣着也总是那么整整嬷嬷,无论白天黑夜都毫无二致。每当爱伦为了参加舞会,接待客人或者到琼斯博罗去旁听法庭审判而梳妆时,那就得花上两个钟头的时间,让两位女仆和嬷嬷帮着打扮,直到自己满意为止;不过到了紧急时刻,她的梳妆功夫便惊人地加快了。 思嘉的房间在她母亲房间的对面,中间隔着个穿堂。她从小就熟悉了:在天亮前什么时候一个光着脚的黑人急促脚步在硬木地板上轻轻走过,接着是母亲房门上匆忙的叩击声,然后是黑人那低沉而带惊慌的耳语,报告本地区那长排白棚屋里有人生病了,死了,或者养了孩子。那时她还很小,常常爬到门口去,从狭窄的门缝里窥望,看到爱伦从黑暗的房间里出来,同时听到里面杰拉尔德平静而有节奏的鼾声;母亲让黑人手中的蜡烛照着,臂下挟着药品箱,头发已梳得熨熨贴贴,紧身上衣的钮扣也会扣好了。 思嘉听到母亲踮着脚尖轻轻走过厅堂,并坚定而怜悯地低声说:“嘘,别这么大声说话。会吵醒奥哈拉先生的。他们还不至于病得要死吧。"此时,她总有一种安慰的感觉。 是的,她知道爱伦已经摸黑外出,一切正常,便爬回去重新躺到床上睡了。 早晨,经过抢救产妇和婴儿的通宵忙乱----那时老方丹大夫和年轻的方丹大夫都已外出应诊,没法来帮她的忙----然后,爱伦又像通常那样作为主妇在餐桌旁出现了,她那黝黑的眼圆略有倦色,可是声音和神态都没有流露丝毫的紧张感。她那庄重的温柔下面有一种钢铁般的品性,它使包托杰拉尔德和姑娘们在内的全家无不感到敬畏,虽然杰拉尔德宁死也不愿承认这一点。 思嘉有时夜里轻轻走去亲吻高个子母亲的面颊,她仰望着那张上唇显得太短太柔嫩的嘴,那张太容易为世人所伤害的嘴,她不禁暗想它是否也曾像娇憨的姑娘那样格格地笑过,或者同知心的女友通宵达旦喁喁私语。可是,不,这是不可能的。母亲从来就是现在这个模样,是一根力量的支柱,一个智慧的源泉,一位对任何问题都能够解答的人。 但是思嘉错了,因为多年以前,萨凡纳州的爱伦·罗毕拉德也曾像那个迷个的海滨城市里的每一位15岁的姑娘那样格格地笑过,也曾同朋友们通宵达旦喁喁私语,互谈理想,倾诉衷肠,只有一个秘密除外。就是在那一年,比她大28岁的杰拉尔德·奥哈拉闯进了她的生活----也是那一年,青春和她那黑眼睛表兄菲利普·罗毕拉德从她的生活中消退了。 因为,当菲利普连同他那双闪闪发光的眼睛和那种放荡不羁的习性永远离开萨凡纳时,他把爱伦心中的光辉也带走了,只给后来娶她的这位罗圈腿矮个儿爱尔兰人留下了一个温驯的躯壳。 不过对杰拉尔德这也就够了,他还因为真正娶上了她这一难以相信的幸运而吓坏了呢。而且,如果她身上失掉了什么,他也从不觉得可惜。他是个精明人,懂得像他这样一个既无门第又无财产但好吹嘘的爱尔兰人,居然娶到海滨各洲中最富有最荣耀人家的女儿,也算得上是一个奇迹了。要知道,杰拉尔德是个白手起家的人。 21岁那年杰拉尔德来到美国。他是匆匆而来像以前或以后许多好好坏坏的爱尔兰人那样,因为他只带着身上穿的衣服和买船票剩下的两个先令,以及悬赏捉拿他的那个身价,而且他觉得这个身价比他的罪行所应得的还高了一些。世界上还没有一个奥兰治派分子值得英国政府或魔鬼本身出一百镑的;但是如果政府对于一个英国的不在地主地租代理人的死会那么认真,那么杰拉尔德·奥哈拉的突然出走便是适时的了。的确,他曾经称呼过地租代理人为"奥兰治派野崽子"不过,按照杰拉尔德对此事的看法,这并不使那个人就有权哼着《博因河之歌》那开头几句来侮辱他。 博因河战役是一百多年以前的事了,但是在奥哈拉家族和他们的邻里看来,就像昨天发生的事,那时他们的希望和梦想,他们的土地和钱财,都在那团卷着一位惊惶逃路的斯图尔特王子的魔雾中消失了,只留下奥兰治王室的威廉和他那带着奥兰治帽徽的军队来屠杀斯图尔特王朝的爱尔兰依附者了。 由于这个以及别的原因,杰拉尔德的家庭并不想把这场争吵的毁灭结果看得十分严重,只把它看作是一桩有严重影响的事而已。多年来,奥哈拉家与英国警察部门的关系很不好,原因是被怀疑参与了反政府活动,而杰拉尔德并不是奥哈拉家族中头一个暗中离开爱尔兰的人。他几乎想不其他的两个哥哥詹姆斯和安德鲁,只记得两个闷声不响的年轻人,他们时常在深夜来来去去,干一些神秘的钩当,或者一走就是好几个星期,使母亲焦急万分。他们是许多年前人们在奥哈拉家猪圈里发现在一批理藏的来福熗之到美国的。现在他们已在萨凡纳作生意发了家,"虽然只有上帝才知道那地方究竟在哪里"----他们母亲提起这两个大儿子时老是这样说,年轻的杰拉尔德就是给送到两位哥哥这里来的。 离家出走时,母亲在他脸上匆匆吻了一下,并贴着耳朵说了一声天主教的祝福,父亲则给了临别赠言,"要记住自己是谁,不要学别人的样。"他的五位高个子兄弟羡慕而略带关注地微笑着向他道了声再见,因为杰拉尔德在强壮的一家人中是最小和最矮的一个。 他父亲和五个哥哥都身六英尺以上,其粗壮的程度也很相称,可是21岁的小个子杰拉尔德懂得,五英尺四英寸半便是上帝所能赐给他的最大高度了。对杰拉尔德来说,他从不以自己身材矮小而自怨自艾,也从不认为这会阻碍他去获得自己所需要的一切。更确切些不如说,正是杰拉尔德的矮小精干使他成为现在这样,因为他早就明白矮小的人必须在高大者中间顽强地活下去。而杰拉尔德是顽强的。 他那些高个儿哥哥是些冷酷寡言的人,在他们身上,历史光荣的传统已经永远消失,沦落为默默的仇恨,爆裂出痛苦的幽默来了。要是杰拉尔德也生来强壮,他就会走上向奥哈拉家族中其他人的道路,在反政府的行列中悄悄地、神秘地干起来。可杰拉尔德像他母亲钟爱地形容的那样,是个"高嗓门,笨脑袋",嬷嬷暴躁,动辄使拳头,并且盛气凌人,叫人见人怕。他在那些高大的奥哈拉家族的人中间,就像一只神气十足的矮脚鸡在满院子大个儿雄鸡中间那样,故意昂首阔步,而他们都爱护他,亲切地怂恿地高声喊叫,必要时也只伸出他们的大拳头敲他几下,让这位小弟弟不要太得意忘形了。 到美国来之前,杰拉尔德没有受过多少教育,可是他对此并不怎么有自知之明。其实,即使别人给他指出,他也不会在意。他母亲教过他读书写字。他很善于作算术题。他的书本知识就只这些。他唯一懂得的拉丁文是作弥撒时应答牧师的用语,唯一的历史知识则是爱尔兰的种种冤屈。他在诗歌方面,只知道穆尔的作品,音乐则限于历代流传下来的爱尔兰歌曲。他尽管对那些比他较有学问的人怀有敬意,可是从来也不感觉到自己的缺陷。而且,在一个新的国家,在一个连那些最愚昧的爱尔兰人也在此发了大财的国家,在一个只要求你强壮不怕干活的国家,他需要这些东西干什么呢? 詹姆斯和安德鲁并不认为自己很少受教育是一桩憾事。 他们收留杰拉尔德进了他们的萨凡纳的商店。他的字迹清楚,算数算得准确,与顾客谈起生意来也很精明,因此赢得了两位哥哥的期重;至于文学知识和欣赏音乐的修养,年轻的杰拉尔德即使具有,也只会引其他们的嗤笑。在本世纪初,美国对爱尔兰人还很和气,詹姆斯和安德鲁开始时用帆布篷车从萨凡纳往佐治亚的内地城镇运送货物,后来赚了钱便自己开店,杰拉尔德也就跟着他们发迹了。 他喜欢南方,并且自己以为很快就成了南方人。的确,关于南方和南方人,有许多东西是他永远也不会理解的,不过,南方人的有些思想习惯,如玩扑克,赛马,争论政治和举行决斗,争取州权和咒骂北方佬,维护奴隶制和棉花至上主义,轻视下流白人和过分讨好妇女,等等,他一旦理解便全心全意地接受,并成为他自己的了。他甚至学会了咀嚼烟叶。至于喝威士忌的本领,他生来就已经具备,那是不用学的。 然而,杰拉尔德还是杰拉尔德。他的生活习惯和思想变了,但他不愿改变自己的态度,即使他能够改变。他羡慕那种稻米棉花的富裕地主,羡慕他们慢条斯理,温文尔雅地骑着纯种马,后面是载着他们文质彬彬的太太们马车和奴隶们的大车,从他们的古旧王国向萨凡纳迤逦而来。可是杰拉尔德永远也学不会文雅。他们那种懒洋洋的含糊不清的声音,他沉得特别悦耳,但他们自己那轻快的土腔却总是吊在舌头上摆脱不了。他们处理重大事务时,在一张牌上赌押一笔财产、一个农场或一个奴隶时,以及像向黑人孩子撒钱币仅的将他们的损失惬意地轻轻勾销时,那种满不在乎地神气是他十分喜爱的。然而杰拉尔德已经懂得什么叫贫穷,因此永远学不会惬意而体面地输钱。他们是个快乐的民族,这些海滨佐治亚人,声音柔和,容易生气,有时前后矛盾得十分可爱,所以杰拉尔德喜欢他们。不过,这位年轻的爱尔兰人身上充满了活泼好动的生机,他是刚刚从一个风冷雾温但多雾的沼泽不产生热病的因家出来的,这便把他同这些出生亚热带气候和瘴气温地中的懒惰绅士们截然分开了。 从他们那里他学到了他发现有用的东西,其余的便拒绝了。他发现玩扑克牌是所有的南方习俗中最有用的,只要会打扑克,加上一个喝威士忌的海量,就行了。玩牌和喝酒是杰拉尔德的天生癖性,给他带来了平生三样最受赞赏的财富中的两位,即他的管家和他的农常另一样便是他的妻子,他只能把她看作是上帝的神奇赐予了。 他的管家叫波克,举止庄严,黑得又光又亮,且有全副出色的裁缝手艺,是他打了个通宵的扑克牌从一位圣·西蒙斯岛的地主手中赢来的。那个地主在敢于虚张声势方面与杰拉尔德不相上下,可是喝起新奥尔良朗姆酒来就不行了。尽管波克原先的主人后来要求以双倍的价钱把他买回去,杰拉尔德却断然地拒绝了,因为这是他占有的第一个奴隶,而且绝对是" 海滨最好的管家",称得上是他实现平生渴望的好开端,怎么能放弃呀?杰拉尔德一心一意要当奴隶主和拥有地主的上等人呢。 他已下定决心,不要像詹姆斯和安德鲁那样把所有的白天都花费在讨价还价上,或者把所有的夜晚都用来对着灯光检查账目。跟两个哥哥不同,他已深深感到社会上最被人瞧不起的是那些"生意人"。杰拉尔德要当一个地主。他像一个曾经在别人所拥有和猎取的土地上干活的爱尔兰佃农那样,满怀希望看到自己的田地绿油油地从眼前舒展开去。他无情地、一心一意地追求一个目标,就是要拥有自己的住宅,自己的农场,自己的马匹,自己的奴隶。而在这个新国家里,既然已不像在他所离开的那个国家要冒双重危险,即全部的收获都租税吞掉和随时有可能被突然没收,他就很想得到这些东西了。但是,一个时期以来,他已渐渐发现,怀抱这个雄心和实现这个雄心毕竟是两回事。滨海的佐治亚州是那样牢牢地掌握在一顽强的贵族阶级手中,在这里,他就休想有一天会赢得他所刻意追求的地位。 过了一些时候,命运之手和一手扑克牌两相结合,给了他一个他后来取名为塔拉的农场,同时让他从海滨适移到北佐治亚的丘陵地区来了。 那是一个很暖的春天夜晚,在萨凡纳的一家酒店,邻座的一位生客的偶尔谈话引起灰拉尔德的侧耳细听。那位生客是萨凡纳本地人,在内地居住了十二年之后刚刚回来。他是从一位圣·在州里举办的抽彩分配土地时的一个获奖者。原来杰拉尔德来到美洲前一年,印第安人放弃了佐治亚中部广大的一起土地,佐治亚州当局便以这种方式进行分配。他迁徙到了那里,并建立了一个农场,但是现在他的房子因失火被烧掉了,他对那个可诅咒的"地方",已感到厌烦,因此很乐意将它脱手。 杰拉尔德心里一直没有放弃那个念头,想拥有一个自己的农场,于是经过介绍,他同那个陌生人谈起来,而当对方告诉他,那个州的北部已经从卡罗来纳的弗吉尼亚涌进了大批大批的新人时,他的兴趣就更大了。杰拉尔德在萨凡纳已住了很久,了解了海滨人的观点,即认为这个州的其余部分都是嬷嬷的森林地带,每个灌木丛中都潜伏着印第安人。他在处理" 奥哈拉兄弟公司"业务时访问过在萨凡纳河上游一百英里的奥古斯塔,而且旅行到了离萨凡纳的内地,看到了那个城市西面的古老城镇。他知道,那个地区也像海滨那样拥有不少居民,但是从陌生人的描绘来看,他的农场是在萨凡纳西比250英里以外的内地,在查塔忽奇河以南不远的地方。他知道,河那边往北一带仍控制在柴罗基人手里,所以他听到陌生人嘲笑他提起与印第安人的纠纷,并叙述那个新地区有多少新兴的城镇正在成长起来、多少农场经营得很好时,便不由得大吃一惊了。 谈话一小时之后,开始放慢,于是杰拉尔德想出一个诡计,那双碧蓝的眼睛也不由得流露出真情来----他提议玩牌。 夜渐渐深了,酒斟了一巡又一巡,这时其他几个牌友都歇手了,只剩下杰拉尔德和陌生人在继续对赌。陌生人把所有的筹码全部押上,外加那个农场的文契。杰拉尔德也推出他的那堆筹码,并把钱装放在上面。如果钱袋里装的恰好是"奥哈拉兄弟公司"的款子,杰拉尔德第二天早晨作弥撒时也不会觉得良心不安而表示忏悔了。他懂得自己所要的是什么,而当他需要时便断然采取最直截了当的手段来攫取它。况且,他是那样相信自己的命运和手中的那几张牌,所以从来就不考虑:要是桌子对面放在是一手更高的牌呢,那他将怎样偿还这笔钱呀? “你这不是靠买卖赚来的,而我呢,也乐得不用再给那地方纳税了,"陌生人叹了口气说,一面叫拿笔墨来。"那所大房子是一年前烧掉的,田地呢,已长满了灌木林和小松树。然而,这些都是你的了。”“千万不要把玩牌和威士忌混为一谈,除非你早就戒酒了,"当天晚上波克服侍杰拉尔德上床睡觉时,杰拉尔德严肃地对他这样说,这位管家由于崇拜主人正开始在学习一种土腔,便用一种基希和米思郡的混合腔调作了必要的回答,当然这种腔调只有他们两个人理解,别人听来是莫名其妙的。 浑浊的弗林特河在一排排松树和爬满藤萝的水橡树中间悄悄地流着,像一条弯屈的胳臂走过杰拉尔德的那片新地,从两侧环抱着它。杰拉尔德站在那个原来有的房子的小小圆丘上,对他来说,这道高高的绿色屏障既是他的所有权的一个看得见的可喜的证明,又好像是他亲手建造用来作为私有标志的一道篱笆。站在那座已烧掉了房子的焦黑基石上,他俯视着那条伸向大路的林荫小道,一面快活地咒骂着,因为这种喜悦之情是那么深厚,已无法用感谢上天的祈祷来表达了。这两排阴森的树木,那片荒芜的草地,连同草地上那些缀满白花的木兰树底下齐腰深的野草,是他的。那些尚未开垦的、长满了小松树和矮树丛的田地,那些连绵不断向周围远远伸展开去的红土地面也属于杰拉尔德·奥哈拉所有了----这一切都成了他的,因为他有一个从不糊涂的爱尔兰人的头脑和将全部家当都押在一手牌上的胆量。 面对这片寂静的荒地杰拉尔德闭上了眼睛,他觉得自己仿佛回到了家里。在这儿,在他脚下,一幢刷白的砖房将拔地而起。大路对面将有一道新的栅栏把肥壮的牲口和纯种马圈起来,而那片从山腰伸到肥沃的河床的红土地,将像凫绒被似的在阳光下闪耀银光----棉花,大片大片的棉花啊!奥哈拉家的产业从此便要复兴了。 用自己一小笔赌本,杰拉尔德从两位不很热心的哥哥那里借到的一点钱,以及典地得到的一笔现金,买了头一批种大田的黑奴,然后来到塔拉,在那四间房间的监工屋里,像单身汉似地孤独地住下来,直到有一天塔拉农场的白色墙壁拔地而起为止。 他平整田地,种植棉花,并从詹姆斯和安德鲁里又借了些钱买来一批奴隶。奥哈拉一家是家族观念很强的人,无论在兴旺或不走好运的时候他们都同样抱在一起,但这并不是出于过分的手足之情,而是因为从严峻的岁月里懂得了,一个家族要生存下去就必须形成一条一致对外的坚固战线。他们把钱借给杰拉尔德,有朝一日钱还会连本带利回到他们手中。这样杰拉尔德不断买进毗连的地亩,农场也逐渐扩大,终于那幢白房子已是现实而不再是梦想。 那是用奴未劳动建筑的,一所房子显得有点笨拙的、好像趴在地上似的,它坐落在一块平地上,俯瞰着那片向河边伸延下去的碧绿的牧场;它使杰拉尔德非常得意,因为它尽管是新建的却已经有点古色古香的模样了。那些曾经见过印第安人在树桠下往来的老橡树,现在用它们的巨大躯干紧紧围住这所房子,同时用枝叶在屋顶上空撑起一起浓荫。那片从乱草中复原过来的草地,现在已长满了苜蓿和百慕大牧草,杰拉尔德决计要把它管理得好好的。从林荫道的柏树到奴隶区那排白色木屋,到处都能使人看到塔拉农场的坚实、稳固、耐久的风采。每当杰拉尔德骑马驰过大路上那个拐弯并看见自己的房子从绿树丛中耸出的屋顶时,他就要兴奋得连同心都膨胀起来,仿佛每一个景观都是头一次看到似的。 这位矮小的、精明的、盛气凌人的杰拉尔德已经完成这一切。 杰拉尔德同县里所有的邻居都相处得很好,但有两家除外,一是麦金托什家,他们的土地和他的在左侧毗连;二是斯莱特里家,他们那三英亩瘠地,沿着河流和约翰·威尔克斯家农场之间的湿地低处,伸展到了他的田地的右边。 麦金托什家是苏格兰和爱尔兰的混血,也是奥兰治派分子,况且,如果他们具有天主教历史中的全部圣洁品质,在杰拉尔德眼中,他们的祖先便会永远诅咒他们了。的确,他们已经在佐治亚生活了七年,而且那以前有一代人是在卡罗来纳度过的,但这个家族中第一个踏上美洲大陆的人是从阿尔斯特来的,这对于杰拉尔德来说就足够了。他们是一个缄默寡言、性格倔强的家族,与外人绝少往来,也只同卡罗来纳的亲戚通婚。杰拉尔德并不是唯一不喜欢他们的人,因为县里各家都相处融洽,乐于交往,谁也忍受不了像他们这种性格的人家。还有谣传说他们同情废奴主义者,但这并没有提高麦金托什家的声誉。老安格斯从来没有解放过一个奴隶,而且由于出卖了一些黑人给一个到路易斯安那蔗田去的过路的奴隶贩子而不可饶恕地违背了社会公德,但谣言照样流传。 “他是个废奴主义者,毫无疑问,"杰拉尔德对约翰·威尔克斯说。"不过,在一个奥兰治党人身上,当一种主义跟苏格兰人的悭吝相抵触时,那个主义也就完了。 至于斯莱特里家,那又是另一回事了。他们是穷白人,甚至还不如安格斯·麦金托什,因为后者总算还能以倔强的独立性争取到邻居们勉强的尊敬。老斯莱特里死死抱住他那几英亩土地,任凭杰拉尔德和约翰·威尔克斯一再出价购买也不放手,他就是这么个刻板而又爱发牢骚的人。他的老婆是个蓬头散发的女人,体弱多病,形容憔悴,却养了一个窝家兔般的儿女----他们很有规律地逐年增大。汤姆·斯莱特里没有奴隶。他和两个大儿子断断续续地种着那几英亩棉花,老子和几个儿子则照管那块号称菜园的土地。可是,不知怎的,棉花总是长不好;菜园呢,也由于斯莱特里太太不断生孩子,种出的蔬菜很少够那一家子吃的。 汤姆·斯莱特里在邻居家的走廊上赖着不走,向人家讨棉花籽儿下种,或者要一块腌肉去"对付一顿",他使出自己的一点点力起来憎恨邻居们,感到他们在客气底下暗藏着轻蔑;他尤其憎恨"阔人家的势利眼黑鬼"。县里那些干家务活的黑人总以为自己比下流坯白人还高一等,他们的公然蔑视刺痛了他,而他们比较稳定的生活更引其他嫉恨。以他自己的穷困生涯作对比,他们确实是吃得好,穿得好,并且病了有人照看,老了有人供养。他们为自己主人的好名声感到骄傲,并且大多以自己归上等人所有而觉得光荣,而他,却是人人都瞧不起的。 斯莱特里很可以把自己的农场以高出三倍的价钱买给县里任何一个大地主。他们会觉得,为了不跟一个碍眼的人居住在同一地方,花这笔钱还是值得的,可是他却很乐意留着不走,靠那每年一包棉花的收入和邻居们的施舍艰难地生活下去。 杰拉尔德同县里所有其他人都相处得很好,愉快且亲近。 威尔克斯家,卡尔弗特家,塔尔顿家,方丹家,他们一看见这位沿着大白马的矮个儿驰上他们的车道便含笑相迎,微笑着招呼仆人拿高脚杯来,杯子里放一茶匙糖和少许薄荷叶,然后斟上威士忌酒。杰拉尔德是可爱的,邻居们很快便知道,连他们的孩子,黑奴和狗都一眼就看出这个尽管大喊大叫,举止粗野,但实际上是个好心肠的人,慷慨大方,乐意倾听别人的话。 每次来时,总要引起一群乱吠乱跳的猎狗和叫喊着的黑孩子跑去迎接他,吵吵嚷嚷抢着牵他的马,当他和蔼地训斥他们时显得有点尴尬的傻笑起来。那些白人孩子也吵着坐到他的膝头上,可他正忙于向他们的长辈指责北方佬政客的丑行呢。他那些朋友的女儿都把他当作知心人,向他吐露自己的恋爱故事。至于邻居的小伙子们,他们是怕在父亲面前承认自己的不体面行为的,可是却把他当作患难知交。 “这么说,你这小鬼头!你这钱欠了一个月啦,"他会大声嚷嚷。"那么,我的上帝,你干吗不早点来跟我要呢?"他那粗鲁的口气是大家都熟悉的,谁也不会反感,所以这只会使那些年轻人腼腆地傻笑两声然后答道:“是呀,大叔,可我害怕麻烦您呢,而且我父亲--- -”“得承认,你父亲是个好人,不过严格了一点。那么,把这个拿去,以后谁也别提起就是了。"最后才表示降服的是地主太太们。不过,当威尔克斯太太----像杰拉尔德形容的"一位了不起的具有沉默天才的女士"----有天晚上杰拉尔德的马已经跑上车道之后对他的丈夫说,"这人尽讲粗话,可毕竟是个上等人,"这时杰拉尔德已肯定是成功了。 他不甚明白他花了差不多十年的功夫才达到这个境地,因为他从来没有意识到他初来时邻居是用怀疑的眼光看他的。按他自己的想法,他一踏上塔拉这块土地便毫无疑问很适合呆在这里了。 他43岁那年,杰拉尔德的腰身已那么粗壮,脸色那么红润,活像一个从体育画报上剪下来的打猎的乡坤,那时他想起塔拉虽然很可贵,可只有它和县里那些心地坦荡、殷勤好客的人,还是不够的。他缺少一位妻子。 塔拉农场迫切需要一位女主人。现在的这位胖厨子本来是管庭院的黑人杂工,因为迫切需要才提升到厨房工作的,可他从来没有按时开过一顿饭;而那位内室女仆原先也是在田里干活的,她任凭屋子里到处都是尘土、好像手头永远也不会有一块干净的桌布或餐布似的,因此一有客人到来,便要手忙脚乱一番。波克是唯一受过训练和胜任的黑人管家,他现在负责管理所有的奴仆,但是几年来,在杰拉尔德遇事乐呵呵的生活作风影响下,也变得怠惰和漫不经心了。作为贴身佣人,他负责整理杰拉尔德的卧室,作为膳事总管,他要让饭菜安排得像个样子,不过在别的方面他就有点听之任之了。 那些具有非洲人精确本能的黑奴,都发现杰拉尔德尽管大喊大叫,但并不怎么厉害,所以他们便肆无忌惮地利用这一点,表面上经常存在这样的威胁,说是要把奴隶卖到南方去,或者要狠狠地鞭打他们,但实际上塔拉农场从来没有卖过一个奴隶,鞭打的事也只发生过一次,那是因为没有把杰拉尔德的狩猎了一整天的爱马认真地刷洗一下。 杰拉尔德那双锐利的天蓝色眼睛意识到左邻右舍的房子收拾得那么整洁,那些头发梳得溜光、裙子啊啊啊啊响的主妇们那么从容地管理着他们的仆人。他不熟悉这些女人从天亮到深夜忙个不停地监督仆人烧菜做饭、哺育婴儿、缝纫洗浆的劳碌情形,他只看到表面的成绩,而这些成绩给他留下了深刻的印象。 一天早晨他准备进城去听法院开审,波克把他心爱的皱领衬衫取来,可他一看便发觉它已被那个内室女仆弄得不成样子,只能给他的管家穿了。这时他感到多么迫切需要一个老婆啊! “杰拉尔德先生,"波克眼看杰拉尔德生气了,便讨好地对他说,一面将那件衬衫卷起来,"你现在缺少的是一位太太,一位能带来许多家仆的太太。"杰拉尔德责骂波克的无礼,但他知道他是对的。他需要一个妻子,他也需要儿女,并且,如果不很快得到他们,那将为时太晚了。但是他不想随便娶个女人,像卡尔弗特那样,把那个照管他的没娘孩子的北方佬女家庭教师讨来当老婆。 他的妻子必须是一位夫人,一位出身名门的夫人,像威尔克斯太太那样端庄贤淑,能够像威尔克斯太太在整顿她自己的田地那样把塔拉农场管理好。 但是要同这个县的大户人家结亲却有两个难处。第一是这里结婚年龄的姑娘很少,另外,也是更不好办的一点,杰拉尔德是个"新人"(尽管他在这里已居住了将近十年),又是外国人,谁也不了解他的家庭情况。尽管佐治亚内地社会并不像海滨贵族社会那样难以接近,可是也没有哪个家庭愿意让自己的女儿媳给一个来历不明的男人。 杰拉尔德知道,虽然那些同他一起找猎、喝酒和谈政治的本县男人多么喜欢他,他还是很难找到一个情愿把女儿许给他的人家。而且他不想让人们闲谈时说起某位某位做父亲的已经深表遗憾地拒绝杰拉尔德向他的女儿求婚了。但是,他的这种自知之明并没有使他觉得自己在领居们面前低人一等。事实上无论如何他也不会感到自己在哪方面不如别人。那仅仅是县里的一种奇怪的习俗,认为姑娘们只能嫁到那些至少在南部已居住20年以上、已经拥有自己的田地和奴隶,并且已沾染了当时引为时髦的那些不良癖好的人家去。 “咱们要到萨凡纳去,收拾行李吧。"他告诉波克。"只要让我听到你说一声'嘘'或者' 保证'!我就立即把你卖掉,因这种种字眼我自己是很少说。"对于他的婚姻詹姆斯和安德鲁可能会提出某种主意,而且他们的老朋友中可能有适合他的要求并愿意嫁给他的女儿吧。他们两个耐心地听完他的想法,可是谁也不表示赞成。他们在萨凡纳没有可以求助的亲戚,因为他们来美国时已经结婚。而他们的老朋友们的女儿也早已出嫁并都在生儿育女人。 “你不是什么有我人,也不是什么望族。"詹姆斯说。 “我已经挣了不少钱,我也能成为一个大户人家。我当然不能马马虎虎讨个老婆了事。”“你太好高鹜远了,"安德鲁干脆这样指出。 不过他们还是替杰拉尔德尽了最大的努力。詹姆斯和安德鲁是个上了年纪的人,在萨凡纳已颇有名望。他的朋友可真不少,在一个月里带着他从这家跑到那家,吃饭啦,跳舞啦,参加野餐会啦,忙个不停。 最后杰拉尔德表示:“只有一我看得上眼的,但是在我来到这里时她恐怕还没有出世呢。”“你看得上眼的究竟是谁呀?”“是爱伦·罗毕拉德小姐,"杰拉尔德答道,他故意装出漫不经心的样子,因为爱伦·罗毕拉德那双稍稍有些耷拉的黑眼睛实际上已远不只叫他看上眼了。她尽管外表上显得有点没精打采,令人捉摸不透,这在一个15岁的姑娘家身上尤其罕见,可是毕竟把他迷住了。另外,她身上还有一种令人倾倒的绝望的神态在深深摇撼他的心灵,叫他在她面前变得格外温柔,而这是他和世界上任何其他人在一起时从来没有过的。 “可是你的年龄完全可以当她的父亲了!”“可我正壮年呀!"杰拉尔德被刺得大叫起来。 詹姆斯冷静地谈了自己的意见。 “杰里,在萨凡纳你再也找不到一个比她更难以娶到的女人了。她父亲是罗毕拉德家族的人,而这些法国人非常骄傲。 至于她母亲----愿她安息----那是非常了不起的太太。”“这些我不管,"杰拉尔德愤愤地说。"何况她母亲已经死了,而罗毕拉德那老头又喜欢我。”“作为一个普通人是这样,可作为女婿就未必了。”“无论如何那姑娘也不会要你的,”安德鲁插嘴说。"她爱上她的一个表兄,那个放荡的叫菲利普的花花公子,已经一年了,尽管她家里还在没完没了地幼她不要这样。”“他这个月到路易斯安那去了。"杰拉尔德说。 “你怎么知道?” “我知道,"杰拉尔德回答,他不想说出是波克向他提供了这一宝贵的信息,也不告诉他们菲利普接到家里的快信赶回西部去了。"而且我并不认为她爱他已经到了摆脱不开的地步。15岁毕竟还太年轻,是不怎么懂得爱情的。”“她们宁愿要那个危险的表兄也不会挑上你的。"因此,当从内地传来消息说起埃尔·罗毕拉德的女儿要嫁给这个矮小的爱尔兰人时,詹姆斯和安德鲁也和其他人一样不禁大吃一惊。整个萨凡纳都在暗中纷纷议论,并猜测如今到西部去了的菲利普·罗毕拉德是怎么回事,可是闲谈归闲谈,谁也没有找到答案。为什么罗毕拉德家族中最可爱的一个女儿会跟一个大喊大叫、面孔通红、身高不及她耳朵的矮小鬼结婚呢?这对所有的人都始终是个谜。 连杰拉尔德本人至今也不明白事情究竟是怎样弄成的。 他只知道出现了一个奇迹。而且,一辈子也就这么一次,当脸色苍白而又十分镇静的爱伦将一只轻柔的手放在他臂膀上并且说:“奥哈拉先生,我愿意嫁给你"时,他简直谦卑到五体投地了。 对于这个神秘莫测的问题,连罗毕拉德家族中那惊惶失措的人也只能找到某些答案。只有爱伦和她的嬷嬷知道那天晚上发生的整个故事,那时这位姑娘像个伤心的孩子似地哭了个通宵,而第二天早晨起床时她已经是个下定决心的女人了。 嬷嬷有所预感地给她的小主妇拿来一个从新奥尔良寄来的小包裹,上面的通讯地址是个陌生人写的,里面装着爱伦的一张小照(爱伦一见便惊叫一声把它丢在地上),四封爱伦写给菲利普·罗毕拉德的亲笔信以及一位新奥尔良牧师附上的短简,它宣布她的这位表哥已经在一次酒吧的斗殴中死了。 “他们把他赶走了,父亲、波琳和尤拉莉把他赶走了。我恨他们。我恨他们大家。我再也不要看见他们了。我要离开这里。 我要到永远看不见他们的地方去,也永远不再见这个城市,或者任何一个使我想起---- 想起的人。"直到快天亮的时候,本来伏在床头陪着她一起啜泣的嬷嬷这才警告她:“可是不行,小宝贝,你不能那样做呀!”“我非这样不可,他是个好心人。我要这样办,或者到查尔斯顿的修道院里去当修女。"正是这个修道院的念头给皮埃尔·罗毕拉德带来了威胁,使他终于在怕惑而悲痛的心情下同意了。他是个坚贞不渝的长老教友,尽管他的家族信奉天主教,因此心想与其让女儿当修女还不如把她嫁给杰拉尔德·奥哈拉好。最后,他对杰拉尔德这个人,除了门第欠缺之外,就不再抱什么反感了。 就这样,爱伦(已不再姓罗毕拉德)离开萨凡纳,她随同一位中年丈夫,带着嬷嬷和二十个黑人家奴,动身到塔拉去了。 次年,他们生了第一个孩子,取名凯蒂·思嘉,是随杰拉尔德的母亲命名的。杰拉尔德感到有点失望,因为他想要一个儿子,不过他还是很喜欢这个黑头发的女儿,高高兴兴地请塔拉农场的每个农奴都喝了酒,自己也乐得喝了个酩酊大醉。 如果说爱伦对于自己那么仓促决定同杰拉尔德结婚曾经有所懊悔的话,那是谁也不知道的,杰拉尔德如此,他每次瞧着她都要骄傲得不得了呢。她一离开萨凡纳那个文雅的海滨城市,便把它和它所留下的记忆都抛到了脑后;同样,她一到达北佐治亚,这里便成为她的家了。 她父亲那所粉刷成浅红色的住宅,她的老家,原是那么幽雅舒适,有着美女般丰盈的体态和帆船乘风破浪的英姿;是法国殖民地式的建筑,以一种雅致的风格拔地而起,里面用的是螺旋形楼梯,旁边的铁制栏杆精美得像花边似的。那是一所富丽、优雅而平静的房子,是她温暖的家,但如今她永远离开了。 她不仅离开了那个优美的住处,而且离开了那建筑背后的一整套文明,如今发现自己置身于一个完全不同的陌生世界,仿佛到了一个新大陆似的。 北佐治亚是个草莽未改、民情粗犷的地区。她高高地站在蓝岭上麓的高原上,看见一望无际逶迤起伏的红色丘陵和底部突露花岗岩,以及到处耸立的嶙峋苍松。这一切在她眼里都显得粗陋和野性未驯,因为她看惯了满缀着青苔苔蔓的海岛上那种幽静的林薮之美,亚热带阳光下远远延伸的白色海滩,以及长满了各种棕榈的沙地上平坦辽阔的远景。 在这个区,人们习惯了冬季的严寒和夏天的酷热,并且这些人身上有的是她从未见过的旺盛的生机和力量。他们为人诚恳,勇敢,大方,蕴藏着善良的天性,可是强壮、刚健,容易发火。她已离开的那些海滨人常常引为骄傲的是,他们对人对事,甚至对待决斗和争执,都采取一种满不在乎的态度;可是这些北佐治亚人身上却有一股子强暴劲儿。在海滨,生活已经熟透了----可在这里,生活还是稚嫩的,新的,生气勃勃的。 在爱伦看来她在萨凡纳认识的所有人好像都是从同一个模子出来的,他们的观点和传统都那样地相似,可在这里人们就多种多样了。这些到北佐治亚定居的人来自许多不同的地方,诸如佐治亚其他地区,卡罗来纳,弗吉尼亚,欧洲,以及北美等等。有些人如杰拉尔德那样是到这里来碰运气的新人。还有些人像爱伦则是旧家族的成员,他们觉得原来的老家待不下去了,便到这遥远的地方来寻找避难所。也有不少人在无故迁徙,这就只能说是前辈拓荒者的好动的血液仍在他们的血脉中加速流动着。 这些来自四面八方和有着各种不同背景的人给这个县的全部生活带来了一种不拘礼俗的风习,而这是爱伦所不曾见过,也是她自己永远无法充分适应的。她本能地知道海滨人民在什么样的环境下应当如何行动。可是,谁也没有说过北佐治亚人该怎样做呀! 另外,还有一种势力推动着这个地区的一切,那就是席卷整个南部的发达高潮。全世界都迫切需要棉花,而这个县的新垦地还很肥沃,在大量生产这种东西。棉花便是本地区的脉搏,植棉和摘棉便是这红土心脏的舒张和收缩。从那些弧形的垄沟中财富源源涌来,同样源源而来的还有骄矜之气----建立在葱绿棉林和广袤的白絮田野上的骄矜。如果棉花能够使他们这一代人富裕起来,那么到下一代该更加富裕多少啊! 对于未来的这种绝对把握使生活充满了激情和热望,而县里的人都在以一种爱伦所不了解的全心全意的态度享受着这种生活。他们有了足够的钱财和足够的奴隶,现在有时间玩乐一番了,何况他们本来就是爱玩的。他们永远也不会忙到不能放下工作来搞一次炸鱼野餐、一次狩猎或赛马,而且很少有一个星期不举行全牲大宴或舞会。 爱伦永远不想也不能完全成为他们中间的一员----她在萨凡纳时凡事都自作主张惯了-- --不过她尊重他们,而且渐渐学会了羡慕这些人的坦诚和直率,他们胸无城府,对一个人价也总是从实际出发。 她成了全县最受尊敬的一位邻居。她是个节俭而温厚的主妇,一个贤妻良母。她本来会奉献给教堂的那分悲痛和无私,如今都全部用来服务于自己的儿女和家庭以及那位带她离开萨凡纳的男人了----这个男人让她离开了萨凡纳和那里所有留下记忆的事物,可是从来也没有提过什么问题呢。 到思嘉年满周岁并且据嬷嬷看来比一般女婴长得更加健康活泼的时候,爱伦生了第二个孩子,取名苏珊·埃莉诺,人们常叫她苏伦;后来又生了卡琳,在家用《圣经》中登记为卡罗琳·艾琳。接下去是一连三个男孩子,但他们都在学会走路之前便夭折了----如今三个男孩躲在离住宅一百来码的坟地里,在那些蜷曲的松树底下,坟头都有一块刻着"小杰拉尔德·奥哈拉"字样的石碑。 爱伦来到塔拉农场的当天,这个地方就变了。她可是已经准备好担负起一个农场女主人的职责了。虽然刚刚15岁,年轻姑娘们在结婚之前首先必须温柔可爱,美丽得像个装饰品,可是结婚以后就理该料理家务,管好全家那上百个的白人黑人,而且她们从小就着眼于这一点而受到了训练。 爱伦早就接受过了每个有教养的年轻太太都必须接受的这种结婚前准备,而且她身边还有嬷嬷,能够叫一个最不中用的黑人也使出劲来。她很快就使杰拉尔德的家务中呈现出秩序、尊严和文雅,给塔拉农场带来了前所未有的美丽风貌。 农场住宅不是按照什么设计图样建筑的,有许多房子是根据需要和方便在不同地方、不同时间陆续增添的。不过,由于爱伦的关注和照官,它形成了自己的迷人之处,从而弥补了设计上的欠缺。一条两旁载着杉树的林荫道从大路一直延伸到住宅门前----这样一条杉树林荫道是一所农场主住宅所必不可少的----它不仅提供阴荫,而且通过对比使其他苍翠树木显得更加明朗。走廊顶上交错的紫藤给粉白砖墙衬映得分外鲜艳,它同门口那几丛粉红的紫薇和庭院中开着的白花木兰连成一起,便把这所房子的笨拙外貌掩饰了不少。 在春夏两季,草地中的鸭茅和苜蓿长得翡翠般绿油油的,逗引着一群群本来只在屋后闲逛的吐绶鸡和白鹅前来观赏。 这些家禽中的长辈们时常领着它们的后代偷偷进入前院,来探访这片绿茵,并在甘美茂盛的茉莉花蕾和百日草苗圃的诱惑下留连忘返。为了防备它们的掠夺,前院走廊上安置了一个小小的黑人哨兵。那是个黑人男孩坐在台阶上,手里拿着一条破毛巾当武器,构成了塔拉农场的一个风景----当然是不怎么愉快的部分,因为不准他用石子投掷这些家禽,只能挥舞毛巾吓唬吓唬罢了。 爱伦给好几十个黑人男孩分派了这个差事,这是一个男性奴隶在塔拉农场得到的第一个职位。他们满十岁以后,就给打发到农场修鞋匠老爷爷那里,或者到制车匠兼木工阿莫斯那里,或者到牧牛人菲利普那里,或者到养骡娃库菲那里专门学手艺。如果他们表现得不适合任何一行手艺,就得去当大田劳工,这么一来他们便觉得自己完全丧失取得一个社会地位的资格了。 爱伦的生活既不舒适也不愉快,然而她并不期待过舒服的日子,而且如果不愉快,那也是女人的命运。她承认这个世界是男人的这一事实。男人占有财产,然后由女人来管理。 管理得好时,男人享受名誉,女人还得称赞他能干。男人只要手上扎了根刺便会像公牛般大声吼叫,而女人连生孩子时的阵痛也得忍气吞声,生怕打搅了他。男人们出言粗鲁,经常酗酒,女人们却装做没有听见这种失言,并一声不响地服侍醉鬼上床睡觉。男人们粗暴而直率,可女人们总是那么和善、文雅,善于体谅别人。 她是在上等妇女的传统教养下长大的,这使她学会怎样承担自己的职责而不丧失其温柔可爱。她有意要把自己的三个女儿也教育成高尚的女性,然而只在那两个小的身上成功了,因为苏伦渴望当一名出色的闺秀,很用心听母亲的教诲,卡琳也是个腼腆听话的女孩。可是思嘉,杰拉尔德的货真价实的孩子,却觉得那条当上等妇女的路实在太艰难了。 思嘉使嬷嬷生气的一个毛病是不爱跟那两个谨慎的妹妹或威尔克斯家很有教养的几位姑娘在一起玩耍,却乐意同农场上的黑孩子或领居家的男孩子们厮混,跟他们一起爬树,一样掷石子。嬷嬷感到十分难过,怎么爱伦的女儿会有这样的怪癖,并且经常劝诫她"要学得像个小姐那样"。但是爱伦对问题看得更宽容,更远。她懂得从青梅竹马中能产生未来的终身伴侣的道理,而一个姑娘的头等大事无非结婚成家。她暗自念叨着:这孩子只不过精力旺盛些罢了,至于教育她学会那些德貌兼备的优点,成为一个使男人倾心的可爱的姑娘,那还有的是时间呢。 抱着这个目的,爱伦和嬷嬷同心协力,所以到思嘉年龄大些时便在这方面学习得相当不错了。她甚至还学会了一些旁的东西。尽管接连请了几位家庭女教师,又在附近的费耶特维尔女子学校念了两年书,她受的教育仍是不怎么完全的,不过在跳舞这一门上却是全县最出色的一位姑娘,真是舞姿鬭e鬭e,美妙无比。她懂得怎样微笑才能使那两个酒窝轻轻抖动,怎样扭着走路才能让宽大的裙子迷人的摇摆,怎样首先仰视一个男人的面孔,然后垂下眼来,迅速地螦E动眼帘,显出自己是在略带激情地颤抖似的。她最擅长的一手是在男人面前装出一副婴儿般天真烂漫的表情,藉以掩饰自己心中一个精明的心计。 爱伦用细声细气地训诫,嬷嬷则用滔滔不绝的唠叨,都在尽力将那些作为淑女贤妻不可少的品质栽培到她身上去。 “你必须学会温柔一些,亲切一些,文静一些,"爱伦对女儿说。"男人们说话时千万别去插嘴,哪怕你真的认为自己比人家知道得多。男人总不喜欢快嘴快舌的姑娘。”“小姑娘家要是皱着眉头、嘟着嘴,说什么俺要这样不要那样,她们就别想找到丈夫,"嬷嬷忧郁地告诫说。"小姑娘家应当低着头回答说:‘先生,好吧。俺知道了,'或者说:‘听您的吩咐,先生。'"虽然她们两人把凡是大家闺秀应该知道和东西都教给了她,但是她仅仅学到了表面的礼貌。至于这些皮毛所应当体现的内在文雅她却既不曾学到也不知道为什么要学。有了外表就行了,因为上等妇女身份的仪表会给她赢来好名声,而她所需要的也不过如此而已。杰拉尔德吹嘘说她是周围五个县的美女,这话有几分真实,因为邻近一带几乎所有的青年,以远到亚特兰大和萨凡纳某些地方的许多人,都向她求过婚。 她到了16岁,就显得娇媚动人了,这应当归功于嬷嬷和爱伦的培养,不过她同时也变得任性、虚荣而固执起来。她有着和她的爱尔兰父亲一样容易感情冲动的品质,可是像她母亲那样无私坚忍的天性却压根儿没有,只不过学到了一点点表面的虚饰。爱伦从来不曾充分认识到这只是一点虚制,因为思嘉经常在她跟前显示自己最好的一面,而将她的大胆妄为掩藏起来,并且克制着自己的嬷嬷,表现得如她母亲所要求的那样性情温婉,否则,母亲那责备的一起管叫她羞愧得会掉泪呢。 但是嬷嬷对她并不存幻想,倒是经常警觉地观察着这种虚饰上的破绽。嬷嬷的眼睛比爱伦的锐利得多,思嘉实在想不起来这一辈子有哪件事是长期瞒过了她的。 这两位钟爱的良师并不替思嘉的快乐、活泼和娇媚担忧。 这些特征正是南方妇女引以自豪的地方。她们担心的是杰拉尔德的倔强而暴躁的天性在她身上的表现,有时还生怕她们无法将她身上这些破坏性的东西掩盖起来,直到她选中一个如意郎君为止。可是思嘉想要结婚----要同艾希礼结婚----并且乐意装出一副貌似庄重、温顺而没有主见的模样,如果这些品性真正能够吸引男人的话。至于男人们为什么喜欢这样,思嘉并不清楚。她只知道这样的方法能行得通。她从来没有多大兴趣去思考这件事的道理,因为她对人的内心活动,甚至她自己的内心活动,一无所知。她只明白,只要她如此这般地做了说了,男人们便会准确无误地用如此这般的恭维来回报她。这像一个数学公式似的一点也不困难,因为思嘉在学校念书时数学这门功课学得相当轻松。 如果说她不怎么懂得男人的心理,那么她对女人的心就知道得更少了,因为她对她们更加不感兴趣。她从来不曾有过一个女朋友,也从来不因此感到遗憾。对于她来说,所有的女人,包括她的两个妹妹在内,在追共同的猎物----男人时,都是天然的仇敌。 除她母亲以外,所有的女人都是如此。 爱伦·奥哈拉却不一样,思嘉把她看做一种有别于人类中其他人的神圣人物。她还是个小孩时,思嘉就把母亲和圣母马利亚混淆在一起了,如今她已长大成人,也看不出有什么理由要改变这种看法。对她来说,爱伦代表着只有上帝或一位母亲才能给予的那种安全可靠的保证。她认为她的母亲是正义、真理、慈爱和睿智的化身,是个伟大的女性。 思嘉非常希望做一个像母亲那样的人。唯一的困难是,要做一个公正、真诚、慈爱、无乱的人,你就得牺牲许多人生乐趣,而且一定会换掉许多英俊的男人。可是人生太短促,要丧失这样可爱的事物就未免太可惜。等到有一天她嫁给了艾希礼,并且年纪老了,有了这样的机会时,她便着意去模仿爱伦。可是,在那之前…… |
CHAPTER II WHEN THE TWINS left Scarlett standing on the porch of Tara and the last sound of flying hooves had died away, she went back to her chair like a sleepwalker. Her face felt stiff as from pain and her mouth actually hurt from having stretched it, unwillingly, in smiles to prevent the twins from learning her secret. She sat down wearily, tucking one foot under her, and her heart swelled up with misery, until it felt too large for her bosom. It beat with odd little jerks; her hands were cold, and a feeling of disaster oppressed her. There were pain and bewilderment in her face, the bewilderment of a pampered child who has always had her own way for the asking and who now, for the first time, was in contact with the unpleasantness of life. Ashley to marry Melanie Hamilton! Oh, it couldn’t be true! The twins were mistaken. They were playing one of their jokes on her. Ashley couldn’t, couldn’t be in love with her. Nobody could, not with a mousy little person like Melanie. Scarlett recalled with contempt Melanie’s thin childish figure, her serious heart-shaped face that was plain almost to homeliness. And Ashley couldn’t have seen her in months. He hadn’t been in Atlanta more than twice since the house party he gave last year at Twelve Oaks. No, Ashley couldn’t be in love with Melanie, because—oh, she couldn’t be mistaken!—because he was in love with her! She, Scarlett, was the one he loved—she knew it! Scarlett heard Mammy’s lumbering tread shaking the floor of the hall and she hastily untucked her foot and tried to rearrange her face in more placid lines. It would never do for Mammy to suspect that anything was wrong. Mammy felt that she owned the O’Haras, body and soul, that their secrets were her secrets; and even a hint of a mystery was enough to set her upon the trail as relentlessly as a bloodhound. Scarlett knew from experience that, if Mammy’s curiosity were not immediately satisfied, she would take up the matter with Ellen, and then Scarlett would be forced to reveal everything to her mother, or think up some plausible lie. Mammy emerged from the hall, a huge old woman with the small, shrewd eyes of an elephant. She was shining black, pure African, devoted to her last drop of blood to the O’Haras, Ellen’s mainstay, the despair of her three daughters, the terror of the other house servants. Mammy was black, but her code of conduct and her sense of pride were as high as or higher than those of her owners. She had been raised in the bedroom of Solange Robillard, Ellen O’Hara’s mother, a dainty, cold, high-nosed Frenchwoman, who spared neither her children nor her servants their just punishment for any infringement of decorum. She had been Ellen’s mammy and had come with her from Savannah to the up-country when she married. Whom Mammy loved, she chastened. And, as her love for Scarlett and her pride in her were enormous, the chastening process was practically continuous. “Is de gempmum gone? Huccome you din’ ast dem ter stay fer supper, Miss Scarlett? Ah done tole Poke ter lay two extry plates fer dem. Whar’s yo’ manners?” “Oh, I was so tired of hearing them talk about the war that I couldn’t have endured it through supper, especially with Pa joining in and shouting about Mr. Lincoln.” “You ain” got no mo’ manners dan a fe’el han’, an’ affer Miss Ellen an’ me done labored wid you. An’ hyah you is widout yo’ shawl! An’ de night air fixin’ ter set in! Ah done tole you an’ tole you ‘bout gittin’ fever frum settin’ in de night air wid nuthin’ on yo’ shoulders. Come on in de house, Miss Scarlett.” Scarlett turned away from Mammy with studied nonchalance, thankful that her face had been unnoticed in Mammy’s preoccupation with the matter of the shawl. “No, I want to sit here and watch the sunset. It’s so pretty. You run get my shawl. Please, Mammy, and I’ll sit here till Pa comes home.” “Yo’ voice soun’ lak you catchin’ a cole,” said Mammy suspiciously. “Well, I’m not,” said Scarlett Impatiently. “You fetch me my shawl.” Mammy waddled back into the hall and Scarlett heard her call softly up the stairwell to the upstairs maid. “You, Rosa! Drap me Miss Scarlett’s shawl.” Then, more loudly: “Wuthless nigger! She ain’ never whar she does nobody no good. Now, Ah got ter climb up an’ git it mahseff.” Scarlett heard the stairs groan and she got softly to her feet. When Mammy returned she would resume her lecture on Scarlett’s breach of hospitality, and Scarlett felt that she could not endure prating about such a trivial matter when her heart was breaking. As she stood, hesitant, wondering where she could hide until the ache in her breast subsided a little, a thought came to her, bringing a small ray of hope. Her father had ridden over to Twelve Oaks, the Wilkes plantation, that afternoon to offer to buy Dilcey, the broad wife of his valet, Pork. Dilcey was head woman and midwife at Twelve Oaks, and, since the marriage six months ago, Pork had deviled his master night and day to buy Dilcey, so the two could live on the same plantation. That afternoon, Gerald, his resistance worn thin, had set out to make an offer for Dilcey. Surely, thought Scarlett, Pa will know whether this awful story is true. Even if he hasn’t actually heard anything this afternoon, perhaps he’s noticed something, sensed some excitement in the Wilkes family. If I can just see him privately before supper, perhaps I’ll find out the truth—that it’s just one of the twins’ nasty practical jokes. It was time for Gerald’s return and, if she expected to see him alone, there was nothing for her to do except meet him where the driveway entered the road. She went quietly down the front steps, looking carefully over her shoulder to make sure Mammy was not observing her from the upstairs windows. Seeing no broad black face, turbaned in snowy white, peering disapprovingly from between fluttering curtains, she boldly snatched up her green flowered skirts and sped down the path toward the driveway as fast as her small ribbon-laced slippers would carry her. The dark cedars on either side of the graveled drive met in an arch overhead, turning the long avenue into a dim tunnel. As soon as she was beneath the gnarled arms of the cedars, she knew she was safe from observation from the house and she slowed her swift pace. She was panting, for her stays were laced too tightly to permit much running, but she walked on as rapidly as she could. Soon she was at the end of the driveway and out on the main road, but she did not stop until she had rounded a curve that put a large clump of trees between her and the house. Flushed and breathing hard, she sat down on a stump to wait for her father. It was past time for him to come home, but she was glad that he was late. The delay would give her time to quiet her breathing and calm her face so that his suspicions would not be aroused. Every moment she expected to hear the pounding of his horse’s hooves and see him come charging up the hill at his usual breakneck speed. But the minutes slipped by and Gerald did not come. She looked down the road for him, the pain in her heart swelling up again. “Oh, it can’t be true!” she thought. “Why doesn’t he come?” Her eyes followed the winding road, blood-red now after the morning rain. In her thought she traced its course as it ran down the hill to the sluggish Flint River, through the tangled swampy bottoms and up the next hill to Twelve Oaks where Ashley lived. That was all the road meant now—a road to Ashley and the beautiful white-columned house that crowned the hill like a Greek Temple. “Oh, Ashley! Ashley!” she thought, and her heart beat faster. Some of the cold sense of bewilderment and disaster that had weighted her down since the Tarleton boys told her their gossip was pushed into the background of her mind, and in its place crept the fever that had possessed her for two years. It seemed strange now that when she was growing up Ashley had never seemed so very attractive to her. In childhood days, she had seen him come and go and never given him a thought. But since that day two years ago when Ashley, newly home from his three years’ Grand Tour in Europe, had called to pay his respects, she had loved him. It was as simple as that. She had been on the front porch and he had ridden up the long avenue, dressed in gray broadcloth with a wide black cravat setting off his frilled shirt to perfection. Even now, she could recall each detail of his dress, how brightly his boots shone, the head of a Medusa in cameo on his cravat phi, the wide Panama hat that was instantly in his hand when he saw her. He had alighted and tossed his bridle reins to a pickaninny and stood looking up at her, his drowsy gray eyes wide with a smile and the sun so bright on his blond hair that it seemed like a cap of shining silver. And he said, “So you’ve grown up, Scarlett.” And, coming lightly up the steps, he had kissed her hand. And his voice! She would never forget the leap of her heart as she heard it, as if for the first time, drawling, resonant, musical. She had wanted him, in that first instant, wanted him as simply and unreasoningly as she wanted food to eat, horses to ride and a soft bed on which to lay herself. For two years he had squired her about the County, to balls, fish fries, picnics and court days, never so often as the Tarleton twins or Cade Calvert, never so importunate as the younger Fontaine boys, but, still, never the week went by that Ashley did not come calling at Tara. True, he never made love to her, nor did the clear gray eyes ever glow with that hot light Scarlett knew so well in other men. And yet—and yet—she knew he loved her. She could not be mistaken about it. Instinct stronger than reason and knowledge born of experience told her that he loved her. Too often she had surprised him when his eyes were neither drowsy nor remote, when he looked at her with a yearning and a sadness which puzzled her. She knew he loved her. Why did he not tell her so? That she could not understand. But there were so many things about him that she did not understand. He was courteous always, but aloof, remote. No one could ever tell what he was thinking about, Scarlett least of all. In a neighborhood where everyone said exactly what he thought as soon as he thought it, Ashley’s quality of reserve was exasperating. He was as proficient as any of the other young men in the usual County diversions, hunting, gambling, dancing and politics, and was the best rider of them all; but he differed from all the rest in that these pleasant activities were not the end and aim of life to him. And he stood alone in his interest in books and music and his fondness for writing poetry. Oh, why was he so handsomely blond, so courteously aloof, so maddeningly boring with his talk about Europe and books and music and poetry and things that interested her not at all—and yet so desirable? Night after night, when Scarlett went to bed after sitting on the front porch in the semi-darkness with him, she tossed restlessly for hours and comforted herself only with the thought that the very next time he saw her he certainly would propose. But the next time came and went, and the result was nothing—nothing except that the fever possessing her rose higher and hotter. She loved him and she wanted him and she did not understand him. She was as forthright and simple as the winds that blew over Tara and the yellow river that wound about it, and to the end of her days she would never be able to understand a complexity. And now, for the first time in her life, she was facing a complex nature. For Ashley was born of a line of men who used their leisure for thinking, not doing, for spinning brightly colored dreams that had in them no touch of reality. He moved in an inner world that was more beautiful than Georgia and came back to reality with reluctance. He looked on people, and he neither liked nor disliked them. He looked on life and was neither heartened nor saddened. He accepted the universe and his place in it for what they were and, shrugging, turned to his music and books and his better world. Why he should have captivated Scarlett when his mind was a stranger to hers she did not know. The very mystery of him excited her curiosity like a door that had neither lock nor key. The things about him which she could not understand only made her love him more, and his odd, restrained courtship only served to increase her determination to have him for her own. That he would propose some day she had never doubted, for she was too young and too spoiled ever to have known defeat. And now, like a thunderclap, had come this horrible news. Ashley to marry Melanie! It couldn’t be true! Why, only last week, when they were riding home at twilight from Fairhill, he had said: “Scarlett, I have something so important to tell you that I hardly know how to say it.” She had cast down her eyes demurely, her heart beating with wild pleasure, thinking the happy moment had come. Then he had said: “Not now! We’re nearly home and there isn’t time. Oh, Scarlett, what a coward I am!” And putting spurs to his horse, he had raced her up the hill to Tara. Scarlett, sitting on the stump, thought of those words which had made her so happy, and suddenly they took on another meaning, a hideous meaning. Suppose it was the news of his engagement he had intended to tell her! Oh, if Pa would only come home! She could not endure the suspense another moment She looked impatiently down the road again, and again she was disappointed. The sun was now below the horizon and the red glow at the rim of the world faded into pink. The sky above turned slowly from azure to the delicate blue-green of a robin’s egg, and the unearthly stillness of rural twilight came stealthily down about her. Shadowy dimness crept over the countryside. The red furrows and the gashed red road lost their magical blood color and became plain brown earth. Across the road, in the pasture, the horses, mules and cows stood quietly with heads over the split-rail fence, waiting to be driven to the stables and supper. They did not like the dark shade of the thickets hedging the pasture creek, and they twitched their ears at Scarlett as if appreciative of human companionship. In the strange half-light, the tall pines of the river swamp, so warmly green in the sunshine, were black against the pastel sky, an impenetrable row of black giants hiding the slow yellow water at their feet. On the hill across the river, the tall white chimneys of the Wilkes, home faded gradually into the darkness of the thick oaks surrounding them, and only far-off pin points of supper lamps showed that a house was here. The warm damp balminess of spring encompassed her sweetly with the moist smells of new-plowed earth and all the fresh green things pushing up to the air. Sunset and spring and new-fledged greenery were no miracle to Scarlett. Their beauty she accepted as casually as the air she breathed and the water she drank, for she had never consciously seen beauty in anything bat women’s faces, horses, silk dresses and like tangible things. Yet the serene half-light over Tara’s well-kept acres brought a measure of quiet to her disturbed mind. She loved this land so much, without even knowing she loved it, loved it as she loved her mother’s face under the lamp at prayer time. Still there was no sign of Gerald on the quiet winding road. If she had to wait much longer, Mammy would certainly come in search of her and bully her into the house. But even as she strained her eyes down the darkening road, she heard a pounding of hooves at the bottom of the pasture hill and saw the horses and cows scatter in fright. Gerald O’Hara was coming home across country and at top speed. He came up the hill at a gallop on his thick-barreled, long-legged hunter, appearing in the distance like a boy on a too large horse. His long white hair standing out behind him, he urged the horse forward with crop and loud cries. Filled with her own anxieties, she nevertheless watched him with affectionate pride, for Gerald was an excellent horseman. “I wonder why he always wants to jump fences when he’s had a few drinks,” she thought. “And after that fall he had right here last year when he broke his knee. You’d think he’d learn. Especially when he promised Mother on oath he’d never jump again.” Scarlett had no awe of her father and felt him more her contemporary than her sisters, for jumping fences and keeping it a secret from his wife gave him a boyish pride and guilty glee that matched her own pleasure in outwitting Mammy. She rose from her seat to watch him. The big horse reached the fence, gathered himself and soared over as effortlessly as a bird, his rider yelling enthusiastically, his crop beating the air, his white curls jerking out behind him. Gerald did not see his daughter in the shadow of the trees, and he drew rein in the road, patting his horse’s neck with approbation. “There’s none in the County can touch you, nor in the state,” he informed his mount, with pride, the brogue of County Meath still heavy on his tongue in spite of thirty-nine years in America. Then he hastily set about smoothing his hair and settling his ruffled shirt and his cravat which had slipped awry behind one ear. Scarlett knew these hurried preenings were being made with an eye toward meeting his wife with the appearance of a gentleman who had ridden sedately home from a call on a neighbor. She knew also that he was presenting her with just the opportunity she wanted for opening the conversation without revealing her true purpose. She laughed aloud. As she had intended, Gerald was startled by the sound; then he recognized her, and a look both sheepish and defiant came over his florid face. He dismounted with difficulty, because his knee was stiff, and, slipping the reins over his arm, stumped toward her. “Well, Missy,” he said, pinching her cheek, “so, you’ve been spying on me and, like your sister Suellen last week, you’ll be telling your mother on me?” There was indignation in his hoarse bass voice but also a wheedling note, and Scarlett teasingly clicked her tongue against her teeth as she reached out to pull his cravat into place. His breath in her face was strong with Bourbon whisky mingled with a faint fragrance of mint. Accompanying him also were the smells of chewing tobacco, well-oiled leather and horses—a combination of odors that she always associated with her father and instinctively liked in other men. “No, Pa, I’m no tattletale like Suellen,” she assured him, standing off to view his rearranged attire with a judicious air. Gerald was a small man, little more than five feet tall, but so heavy of barrel and thick of neck that his appearance, when seated, led strangers to think him a larger man. His thickset torso was supported by short sturdy legs, always incased in the finest leather boots procurable and always planted wide apart like a swaggering small boy’s. Most small people who take themselves seriously are a little ridiculous; but the bantam cock is respected in the barnyard, and so it was with Gerald. No one would ever have the temerity to think of Gerald O’Hara as a ridiculous little figure. He was sixty years old and his crisp curly hair was silver-white, but his shrewd face was unlined and his hard little blue eyes were young with the unworried youthfulness of one who has never taxed his brain with problems more abstract than how many cards to draw in a poker game. His was as Irish a face as could be found in the length and breadth of the homeland he had left so long ago—round, high colored, short nosed, wide mouthed and belligerent. Beneath his choleric exterior Gerald O’Hara had the tenderest of hearts.” He could not bear to see a slave pouting under a reprimand, ho matter how well deserved, or hear a kitten mewing or a child crying; but he had a horror of having this weakness discovered. That everyone who met him did discover his kindly heart within five minutes was unknown to him; and his vanity would have suffered tremendously if he had found it out, for he liked to think that when he bawled orders at the top of his voice everyone trembled and obeyed. It had never occurred to him that only one voice was obeyed on the plantation—the soft voice of his wife Ellen. It was a secret he would never learn, for everyone from Ellen down to the stupidest field hand was in a tacit and kindly conspiracy to keep him believing that his word was law. Scarlett was impressed less than anyone else by his tempers and his roarings. She was his oldest child and, now that Gerald knew there would be no more sons to follow the three who lay in the family burying ground, he had drifted into a habit of treating her in a man-to-man manner which she found most pleasant. She was more like her father than her younger sisters, for Carreen, who had been born Caroline Irene, was delicate and dreamy, and Suellen, christened Susan Elinor, prided herself on her elegance and ladylike deportment. Moreover, Scarlett and her father were bound together by a mutual suppression agreement. If Gerald caught her climbing a fence instead of walking half a mile to a gate, or sitting too late on the front steps with a beau, he castigated her personally and with vehemence, but he did not mention the fact to Ellen or to Mammy. And when Scarlett discovered him jumping fences after his solemn promise to his wife, or learned the exact amount of his losses at poker, as she always did from County gossip, she refrained from mentioning the fact at the supper table in the artfully artless manner Suellen had. Scarlett and her father each assured the other solemnly that to bring such matters to the ears of Ellen would only hurt her, and nothing would induce them to wound her gentleness. Scarlett looked at her father in the fading light, and, without knowing why, she found it comforting to be in his presence. There was something vital and earthy and coarse about him that appealed to her. Being the least analytic of people, she did not realize that this was because she possessed in some degree these same qualities, despite sixteen years of effort on the part of Ellen and Mammy to obliterate them. “You look very presentable now,” she said, “and I don’t think anyone will suspect you’ve been up to your tricks unless you brag about them. But it does seem to me that after you broke your knee last year, jumping that same fence—” “Well, may I be damned if I’ll have me own daughter telling me what I shall jump and not jump,” he shouted, giving her cheek another pinch. “It’s me own neck, so it is. And besides, Missy, what are you doing out here without your shawl?” Seeing that he was employing familiar maneuvers to extricate himself from unpleasant conversation, she slipped her arm through his and said: “I was waiting for you. I didn’t know you would be so late. I just wondered if you had bought Dilcey.” “Bought her I did, and the price has ruined me. Bought her and her little wench, Prissy. John Wilkes was for almost giving them away, but never will I have it said that Gerald O’Hara used friendship in a trade. I made him take three thousand for the two of them.” “In the name of Heaven, Pa, three thousand! And you didn’t need to buy Prissy!” “Has the time come when me own daughters sit in judgment on me?” shouted Gerald rhetorically. “Prissy is a likely little wench and so—” “I know her. She’s a sly, stupid creature,” Scarlett rejoined calmly, unimpressed by his uproar. “And the only reason you bought her was because Dilcey asked you to buy her.” Gerald looked crestfallen and embarrassed, as always when caught in a kind deed, and Scarlett laughed outright at his transparency. “Well, what if I did? Was there any use buying Dilcey if she was going to mope about the child? Well, never again will I let a darky on this place marry off it. It’s too expensive. Well, come on, Puss, let’s go in to supper.” The shadows were falling thicker now, the last greenish tinge had left the sky and a slight chill was displacing the balminess of spring. But Scarlett loitered, wondering how to bring up the subject of Ashley without permitting Gerald to suspect her motive. This was difficult, for Scarlett had not a subtle bone in her body; and Gerald was so much like her he never failed to penetrate her weak subterfuges, even as she penetrated his. And he was seldom tactful in doing it. “How are they all over at Twelve Oaks?” “About as usual. Cade Calvert was there and, after I settled about Dilcey, we all set on the gallery and had several toddies. Cade has just come from Atlanta, and it’s all upset they are there and talking war and—” Scarlett sighed. If Gerald once got on the subject of war and secession, it would be hours before he relinquished it She broke in with another line. “Did they say anything about the barbecue tomorrow?” “Now that I think of it they did. Miss—what’s-her-name—the sweet little thing who was here last year, you know, Ashley’s cousin—oh, yes, Miss Melanie Hamilton, that’s the name—she and her brother Charles have already come from Atlanta and—” “Oh, so she did come?” “She did, and a sweet quiet thing she is, with never a word to say for herself, like a woman should be. Come now, daughter, don’t lag. Your mother will be hunting for us.” Scarlett’s heart sank at the news. She had hoped against hope that something would keep Melanie Hamilton in Atlanta where she belonged, and the knowledge that even her father approved of her sweet quiet nature, so different from her own, forced her into the open. “Was Ashley there, too?” “He was.” Gerald let go of his daughter’s arm and turned, peering sharply into her face. “And if that’s why you came out here to wait for me, why didn’t you say so without beating around the bush?” Scarlett could think of nothing to say, and she felt her face growing red with annoyance. “Well, speak up.” Still she said nothing, wishing that it was permissible to shake one’s father and tell him to hush his mouth. “He was there and he asked most kindly after you, as did his sisters, and said they hoped nothing would keep you from the barbecue tomorrow. I’ll warrant nothing will,” he said shrewdly. “And now, daughter, what’s all this about you and Ashley?” “There is nothing,” she said shortly, tugging at his arm. “Let’s go in, Pa.” “So now ‘tis you wanting to go in,” he observed. “But here I’m going to stand till I’m understanding you. Now that I think of it ‘tis strange you’ve been recently. Has he been trifling with you? Has he asked to marry you?” “No,” she said shortly. “Nor will he,” said Gerald. Fury flamed in her, but Gerald waved her quiet with a hand. “Hold your tongue, Miss! I had it from John Wilkes this afternoon in the strictest confidence that Ashley’s to marry Miss Melanie. It’s to be announced tomorrow.” Scarlett’s hand fell from his arm. So it was true! A pain slashed at her heart as savagely as a wild animal’s fangs. Through it all, she felt her father’s eyes on her, a little pitying, a little annoyed at being faced with a problem for which he knew no answer. He loved Scarlett, but it made him uncomfortable to have her forcing her childish problems on him for a solution. Ellen knew all the answers. Scarlett should have taken her troubles to her. “Is it a spectacle you’ve been making of yourself—of all of us?” he bawled, his voice rising as always in moments of excitement. “Have you been running after a man who’s not in love with you, when you could have any of the bucks in the County?” Anger and hurt pride drove out some of the pain. “I haven’t been running after him. It—it just surprised me.” “It’s lying you are!” said Gerald, and then, peering at her stricken face, he added in a burst of kindliness: “I’m sorry, daughter. But after all, you are nothing but a child and there’s lots of other beaux.” “Mother was only fifteen when she married you, and I’m sixteen,” said Scarlett, her voice muffled. “Your mother was different,” said Gerald. “She was never flighty like you. Now come, daughter, cheer up, and I’ll take you to Charleston next week to visit your Aunt Eulalie and, what with all the hullabaloo they are having over there about Fort Sumter, you’ll be forgetting about Ashley in a week.” “He thinks I’m a child,” thought Scarlett, grief and anger choking utterance, “and he’s only got to dangle a new toy and I’ll forget my bumps.” “Now, don’t be jerking your chin at me,” warned Gerald. “If you had any sense you’d have married Stuart or Brent Tarleton long ago. Think it over, daughter. Marry one of the twins and then the plantations will run together and Jim Tarleton and I will build you a fine house, right where they join, in that big pine grove and—” “Will you stop treating me like a child!” cried Scarlett. “I don’t want to go to Charleston or have a house or marry the twins. I only want—” She caught herself but not in time. Gerald’s voice was strangely quiet and he spoke slowly as if drawing his words from a store of thought seldom used. “It’s only Ashley you’re wanting, and you’ll not be having him. And if he wanted to marry you, ‘twould be with misgivings that I’d say Yes, for an the fine friendship that’s between me and John Wilkes.” And, seeing her startled look, he continued: “I want my girl to be happy and you wouldn’t be happy with him.” “Oh, I would! I would!” “That you would not, daughter. Only when like marries like can there be any happiness.” Scarlett had a sudden treacherous desire to cry out, “But you’ve been happy, and you and Mother aren’t alike,” but she repressed it, fearing that he would box her ears for her impertinence. “Our people and the Wilkes are different,” he went on slowly, fumbling for words. “The Wilkes are different from any of our neighbors—different from any family I ever knew. They are queer folk, and it’s best that they marry their cousins and keep their queerness to themselves.” “Why, Pa, Ashley is not—” “Hold your whist, Puss! I said nothing against the lad, for I like him. And when I say queer, it’s not crazy I’m meaning. He’s not queer like the Calverts who’d gamble everything they have on a horse, or the Tarletons who turn out a drunkard or two in every litter, or the Fontaines who are hot-headed little brutes and after murdering a man for a fancied slight. That kind of queerness is easy to understand, for sure, and but for the grace of God Gerald O’Hara would be having all those faults! And I don’t mean that Ashley would run off with another woman, if you were his wife, or beat you. You’d be happier if he did, for at least you’d be understanding that. But he’s queer in other ways, and there’s no understanding him at all. I like him, but it’s neither heads nor tails I can make of most he says. Now, Puss, tell me true, do you understand his folderol about books and poetry and music and oil paintings and such foolishness?” “Oh, Pa,” cried Scarlett impatiently, “if I married him, I’d change all that!” “Oh, you would, would you now?” Said Gerald testily, shooting a sharp look at her. “Then it’s little enough you are knowing of any man living, let alone Ashley. No wife has ever changed a husband one whit, and don’t you be forgetting that. And as for changing a Wilkes—God’s nightgown, daughter! The whole family is that way, and they’ve always been that way. And probably always will. I tell you they’re born queer. Look at the way they go tearing up to New York and Boston to hear operas and see oil paintings. And ordering French and German books by the crate from the Yankees! And there they sit reading and dreaming the dear God knows what, when they’d be better spending their time hunting and playing poker as proper men should.” “There’s nobody in the County sits a horse better than Ashley,” said Scarlett, furious at the slur of effeminacy flung on Ashley, “nobody except maybe his father. And as for poker, didn’t Ashley take two hundred dollars away from you just last week in Jonesboro?” “The Calvert boys have been blabbing again,” Gerald said resignedly, “else you’d not be knowing the amount. Ashley can ride with the best and play poker with the best—that’s me, Puss! And I’m not denying that when he sets out to drink he can put even the Tarletons under the table. He can do all those things, but his heart’s not in it. That’s why I say he’s queer.” Scarlett was silent and her heart sank. She could think of no defense for this last, for she knew Gerald was right. Ashley’s heart was in none of the pleasant things he did so well. He was never more than politely interested in any of the things that vitally interested every one else. Rightly interpreting her silence, Gerald patted her arm and said triumphantly: “There now, Scarlett! You admit ‘tis true. What would you be doing with a husband like Ashley? ‘Tis moonstruck they all are, all the Wilkes.” And then, in a wheedling tone: “When I was mentioning the Tarletons the while ago, I wasn’t pushing them. They’re fine lads, but if it’s Cade Calvert you’re setting your cap after, why, ‘tis the same with me. The Calverts are good folk, all of them, for all the old man marrying a Yankee. And when I’m gone—Whist, darlin’, listen to me! I’ll leave Tara to you and Cade—” “I wouldn’t have Cade on a silver tray,” cried Scarlett in fury. “And I wish you’d quit pushing him at me! I don’t want Tara or any old plantation. Plantations don’t amount to anything when—” She was going to say “when you haven’t the man you want,” but Gerald, incensed by the cavalier way in which she treated his proffered gift, the thing which, next to Ellen, he loved best in the whole world uttered a roar. “Do you stand there, Scarlett O’Hara, and tell me that Tara—that land—doesn’t amount to anything?” Scarlett nodded obstinately. Her heart was too sore to care whether or not she put her father in a temper. “Land is the only thing in the world that amounts to anything,” he shouted, his thick, short arms making wide gestures of indignation, “for ‘tis the only thing in this world that lasts, and don’t you be forgetting it! ‘Tis the only thing worth working for, worth fighting for—worth dying for.” “Oh, Pa,” she said disgustedly, “you talk like an Irishman!” “Have I ever been ashamed of it? No, ‘tis proud I am. And don’t be forgetting that you are half Irish, Miss! And to anyone with a drop of Irish blood in them the land they live on is like their mother. ‘Tis ashamed of you I am this minute. I offer you the most beautiful land in the world—saving County Meath in the Old Country—and what do you do? You sniff!” Gerald had begun to work himself up into a pleasurable shouting rage when something in Scarlett’s woebegone face stopped him. “But there, you’re young. ‘Twill come to you, this love of land. There’s no getting away from it, if you’re Irish. You’re just a child and bothered about your beaux. When you’re older, you’ll be seeing how ‘tis. ... Now, do you be making up your mind about Cade or the twins or one of Evan Munroe’s young bucks, and see how fine I turn you out!” “Oh, Pa!” By this time, Gerald was thoroughly tired of the conversation and thoroughly annoyed that the problem should be upon his shoulders. He felt aggrieved, moreover, that Scarlett should still look desolate after being offered the best of the County boys and Tara, too. Gerald liked his gifts to be received with clapping of hands and kisses. “Now, none of your pouts, Miss. It doesn’t matter who you marry, as long as he thinks like you and is a gentleman and a Southerner and prideful. For a woman, love comes after marriage.” “Oh, Pa, that’s such an Old Country notion!” “And a good notion it is! All this American business of running around marrying for love, like servants, like Yankees! The best marriages are when the parents choose for the girl. For how can a silly piece like yourself tell a good man from a scoundrel? Now, look at the Wilkes. What’s kept them prideful and strong all these generations? Why, marrying the likes of themselves, marrying the cousins their family always expects them to marry.” “Oh,” cried Scarlett, fresh pain striking her as Gerald’s words brought home the terrible inevitability of the truth. Gerald looked at her bowed head and shuffled his feet uneasily. “It’s not crying you are?” he questioned, fumbling clumsily at her chin, trying to turn her face upward, his own face furrowed with pity. “No,” she cried vehemently, jerking away. “It’s lying you are, and I’m proud of it. I’m glad there’s pride in you, Puss. And I want to see pride in you tomorrow at the barbecue. I’ll not be having the County gossiping and laughing at you for mooning your heart out about a man who never gave you a thought beyond friendship.” “He did give me a thought,” thought Scarlett, sorrowfully in her heart. “Oh, a lot of thoughts! I know he did. I could tell. If I’d just had a little longer, I know I could have made him say—Oh, if it only wasn’t that the Wilkes always feel that they have to marry their cousins!” Gerald took her arm and passed it through his. “We’ll be going in to supper now, and all this is between us. I’ll not be worrying your mother with this—nor do you do it either. Blow your nose, daughter.” Scarlett blew her nose on her torn handkerchief, and they started up the dark drive arm in arm, the horse following slowly. Near the house, Scarlett was at the point of speaking again when she saw her mother in the dim shadows of the porch. She had on her bonnet, shawl and mittens, and behind her was Mammy, her face like a thundercloud, holding in her hand the black leather bag in which Ellen O’Hara always carried the bandages and medicines she used in doctoring the slaves. Mammy’s lips were large and pendulous and, when indignant, she could push out her lower one to twice its normal length. It was pushed out now, and Scarlett knew that Mammy was seething over something of which she did not approve. “Mr. O’Hara,” called Ellen as she saw the two coming up the driveway—Ellen belonged to a generation that was formal even after seventeen years of wedlock and the bearing of six children—”Mr. O’Hara, there is illness at the Slattery house. Emmie’s baby has been born and is dying and must be baptized. I am going there with Mammy to see what I can do.” Her voice was raised questioningly, as though she hung on Gerald’s assent to her plan, a mere formality but one dear to the heart of Gerald. “In the name of God!” blustered Gerald. “Why should those white trash take you away just at your supper hour and just when I’m wanting to tell you about the war talk that’s going on in Atlanta! Go, Mrs. O’Hara. You’d not rest easy on your pillow the night if there was trouble abroad and you not there to help.” “She doan never git no res’ on her piller fer hoppin’ up at night time nursin’ niggers an po’ w’ite trash dat could ten’ to deyseff,” grumbled Mammy in a monotone as she went down the stairs toward the carriage which was waiting in the side drive. “Take my place at the table, dear,” said Ellen, patting Scarlett’s cheek softly with a mittened hand. In spite of her choked-back tears, Scarlett thrilled to the never-failing magic of her mother’s touch, to the faint fragrance of lemon verbena sachet that came from her rustling silk dress. To Scarlett, there was something breath-taking about Ellen O’Hara, a miracle that lived in the house with her and awed her and charmed and soothed her. Gerald helped his wife into the carriage and gave orders to the coachman to drive carefully. Toby, who had handled Gerald’s horses for twenty years, pushed out his lips in mute indignation at being told how to conduct his own business. Driving off, with Mammy beside him, each was a perfect picture of pouting African disapproval. “If I didn’t do so much for those trashy Slatterys that they’d have to pay money for elsewhere,” fumed Gerald, “they’d be willing to sell me their miserable few acres of swamp bottom, and the County would be well rid of them.” Then, brightening, in anticipation of one of his practical jokes: “Come daughter, let’s go tell Pork that instead of buying Dilcey, I’ve sold him to John Wilkes.” He tossed the reins of his horse to a small pickaninny standing near and started up the steps. He had already forgotten Scarlett’s heartbreak and his mind was only on plaguing his valet. Scarlett slowly climbed the steps after him, her feet leaden. She thought that, after all, a mating between herself and Ashley could be no queerer than that of her father and Ellen Robillard O’Hara. As always, she wondered how her loud, insensitive father had managed to marry a woman like her mother, for never were two people further apart in birth, breeding and habits of mind. 第二章 思嘉站在塔拉农场的走廊上目送那对孪生兄弟离开,直到飞跑的马蹄声已隐隐消失,她才如梦游人似地回到椅子上去。她觉得得脸颊发僵仿佛有什么痛处,但嘴巴却真的酸痛了,因为是刚才很长一段时间她在咧着嘴假装微笑,为了不让那对孪生子发觉她内心的秘密。她疲惫地坐下,将一条腿盘起来,这时心脏难受得发胀,好像快要从胸膛里爆出来一般似的。它古怪地轻轻跳着;她的两手冰凉,一种大祸临头的感觉沉重地压迫着她。她脸上流露出痛苦和惶惑的神情,这种惶惑说明,她这个娇宠惯了、经常有求必应的孩子如今可碰到生活中不愉快的事了。 艾希礼将同媚兰·汉密尔顿结婚了! 唔,这不可能是真的!那对孪生子准搞错了。他们又在找她开玩笑呢。艾希礼不会爱上她。谁也不会的。同媚兰这样一个耗子似的小个儿。思嘉怀着轻蔑的情绪想起媚兰瘦小得像孩子的身材,她那张严肃而平淡得几乎有点丑的鸡心形的脸,而且可能艾希礼是好几个月没见到她了。自从去年“十二橡树”村举行家中大宴会以来,她顶多只到过亚特兰大两次。不,艾希礼不可能同媚兰恋爱,因为----唔,她决不会错的----因为他在爱她呀!她思嘉才是他所爱的那个人呢—-她知道! 思嘉听见嬷嬷的脚步笨重地在堂屋里把地板踩得嘎嘎响,便迅速将盘着的那条腿伸下来,并设法放松脸部的表情,尽量显得平静一些。万万不能让嬷嬷怀疑到出了什么事呀! 嬷嬷总觉得奥哈拉家的人连身子带灵魂都是她的,他们的秘密就是她的秘密。只要有一丝神秘的味道,她就会像条警犬似的无情地追踪嗅迹。根据已往的经验,思嘉知道如果嬷嬷的好奇心不能立即满足,她就会去跟妈妈一起嘀咕,那时便只好向母亲交代一切,要不就得编出一个像样的谎话来。 嬷嬷从堂屋里走出来,她是个大块头老婆子,但眼睛细小而精明,活像一头大象。她长得黑不溜秋,是纯粹的非洲人,把整个身心毫无保留地献给了奥哈拉一家,成了爱伦的左右手、三个女孩子的煞星和其他家人的阎罗王。虽然嬷嬷是个黑人,但她的行为规范和自豪感却与她主人一样高或者还要高些。她是在爱伦·奥哈拉的母亲索兰吉·罗毕拉德的卧室里养育大的,那位老太太是个文雅的高鼻子法兰西人,无论对自己的儿女或者仆人只要触犯法规便不惜给以应得的惩罚。她曾经做过爱伦的嬷嬷,后来爱伦结婚时跟着她从萨凡纳来到了内地。嬷嬷要是宠爱谁,就会严加管教。正由于她是那样宠爱思嘉和因思嘉而感到骄傲,她对思嘉的管教也就没完没了。 “那两位少爷走了吗?你怎么没留他们吃晚饭呀,思嘉小姐?俺告诉了波克叫他添两份饭啦。你的礼貌到哪里去了呢?”“唔,他们尽谈论战争,我都听得烦了,再也忍受不了同他们一起吃晚饭,尤其怕爸爸也参加进来大叫大嚷,议论林肯先生。”“你可像个女孩一般不知礼了,亏你妈妈和俺还辛辛苦苦教你呢。还有,你怎么没披上你的披肩呀?夜风快吹起来了! 俺一次又一次告诉你,光着肩膀坐在夜风里要感冒发烧的。思嘉小姐快进屋里来。"思嘉故意装出一副冷淡的样子掉过头去,幸喜嬷嬷正一个劲儿唠叨披肩的事,不曾看见她的脸。 “不,我想坐在这里看落日。它多美呀。你去给我把披肩拿来。劳驾了,嬷嬷,让我坐在这里,等爸爸回家来我再进屋去。”“俺听你这声音像是着凉了,"嬷嬷怀疑地说。 “唔,没有,"思嘉不耐烦地说。"你去把我的披肩拿来吧。"嬷嬷蹒跚地走回堂屋,这时思嘉听到她轻声呼唤着上楼去找楼上的那个女佣人。 “罗莎!听着,把思嘉小姐的披肩给我扔下来。"接着,她的声音更响了,"不中用的黑鬼!她总是什么忙也带不上的。 又得俺亲自爬上楼去取了。” 听到楼梯格格作响,思嘉便轻轻站起身来。嬷嬷一回来又要重复那番责备她不懂礼貌的话了,可思嘉觉得正当自己心酸的时候,实在无法忍受叨叨这种鸡毛蒜皮的小事。她就犹豫不定地站着,不知该躲到哪里去让痛苦的心情略略平息,这时她忽然起了一个念头,这给她带来了一线微弱的希望。原来那天下午她父亲骑马到威尔克斯家的农场“十二橡树”村去了,是为了商量购买他那位管家波克的迪尔茜。迪尔茜是“十二橡树”村的女领班,自从六个月前结婚以来,波克就没日没夜地缠着要主人把她买过来,好让他们两口子住在一起。那天下午杰拉尔德实在已抵挡不住,只得动身到那边去商量购买迪尔茜的事。 当然,思嘉想,爸爸会知道这个可怕的传闻不是真的。就算今天下午他的确没有听到什么消息,他也可能注意到了某些迹象,感觉到威尔克斯家有什么叫人兴奋的事情吧。要是我能在吃晚饭前一个人看见他,说不定就能弄个明白----原来不过是那哥儿俩的一个缺德的玩笑罢了。 杰拉尔德该回来了。如果她想单独见他,她也无须麻烦,只要在车道进入大路的口子上迎接他就行了。她悄悄地走下屋前的台阶,又回过头来仔细看看,要弄清楚嬷嬷的确没有在楼上窗口观望。她没有看见那张围着雪白头巾的黑色阔脸在晃动的窗帘间不满地窥探,便大胆地撩起那件绿花布裙,沿着石径向车道快快地跑去,只要那又镶有锻带的小便鞋允许,她是能跑多快就跑多快的。 沿着碎石的车道两边,茂密的柏树枝叶交错,形成天然的拱顶,使那长长的林荫路变成了一条阴暗的甬道。一跑进这甬道里,她便觉得自己已经安全了,家里的人望不见了,这才放慢脚步,她气喘吁吁,因为她的胸衣箍得太紧,不容许她这样飞跑,不过她还是尽可能迅速走去。她很快便到了车道尽头,走上了大路,可是她并不停步,直到拐了个弯,那里有一大丛树遮掩着她,使家里人再也不能看见了。 她两颊发红,呼吸急促,坐在一个树桩上等待父亲。往常这时候,他已经回来了,不过她高兴今天他晚一些,这样她才有时间喘过气来,使脸色恢复平静,不致引起父亲的猜疑。她分分秒秒地期待着听到得得的马蹄声,看到父亲用他那吓死人的速度驰上山冈。可是一分钟又一分钟过去了,杰拉尔德还是不见回来。顺着大路望去,想找到他的影子,这时心里的痛楚又膨胀起来了。 “唔,那不可能是真的!"她心想。"他为什么不来呢?"她的眼光沿着那条因早晨下过雨而变得血红的大路沉思着,在心里跟踪着这段路程奔下山冈,到那懒洋洋的弗林特河畔,越过荆榛杂乱的沼泽谷底,再爬上下一个山冈到达“十二橡树”村。艾希礼就住在那里。此时,这条路的全部意义就在这里----它是通向艾希礼和那幢美丽的像希腊神殿般高踞于山冈上的白圆柱房子。 “啊,艾希礼!艾希礼!"她心里喊着,心脏跳得更快了。 自从塔尔顿家那对孪生子把他们的闲话告诉她以后,一种惶惑和灾祸的冷酷感一直沉重地压抑着她,可如今这种意识已被推到她心灵的后壁去,代之而的是两年以来始终支配着她的那股狂热之情。 现在看来很有些奇怪,当她还没有长大成人的时候,为什么从不觉得艾希礼有什么动人之处呢?童年时,她看见他走来走去,可一次也不曾想过他。直到两年前那一天,当时艾希礼为期三年的欧洲大陆旅游刚回来,到她家来拜望,她才爱上了他。事情就这么简单。 她那时正在屋前走廊上,他沿着马从林荫道上远远而来,身穿灰色细棉布上衣,领口打着个宽大的黑蝴蝶结,与那件皱领衬衫很相配,直到今天,她还记得他那穿着上的每一个细节,那双马靴多亮啊,还有蝴蝶结别针上那个浮雕宝石的蛇发女妖的头,那顶宽边巴拿马帽子----他一看见她就立即把帽子拿在手里了。他跳下马,把缰绳扔给一个黑孩子,站在那里朝她望着,那双朦胧的灰色眼睛瞪得大大的,流露着微笑;他的金黄色头发在阳光下闪烁,像一顶灿烂的王冠。那时他温和地说:“思嘉,你都长大了。"然后轻轻地走上台阶,吻了吻她的手。还有他的声音啊!她永远也忘不了她听到时那怦然心动的感觉,仿佛她是第一次听到这样慢吞吞的、响亮的、音乐般的声音! 就在这最初一刹那,她觉得她需要他,像要东西吃,买马匹,要温软的床睡觉那样简单,那样说不出原因地需要他。 两年以来,都是他陪着她在县里各处走动,参加舞会、炸鱼宴、野餐,甚至法庭开庭日的听审,等等,虽然从来不像塔尔顿兄弟那样纷繁,也不像方丹家的年轻小伙儿那样纠缠不休,可每星期都要到塔拉农场来拜访,从未间断过。 确实,他从来没有向她求过爱,他那清澈的眼睛也从来没有流露过像思嘉在其他男人身上熟悉的那种炽热的光芒。 可是仍然----仍然----思嘉知道他在爱她。在这点上她是不会错的。直觉比理智更可信赖,而从经验中产生的认识也告诉她他爱她。她几乎常常中他吃惊,那时他的眼睛显得既不朦胧也不疏远,带着热切而凄楚的神情望着她,使她不知所措。她知道他在爱她。他为什么不对她说明呢?这一点她无法理解。但是她无法理解他的地方还多着呢。 他常常很客气,但又那么冷淡、疏远。谁也不明白他在想些什么,而思嘉是最不明白的。在那一带,人人都是一想到什么就说什么,因此艾希礼的谨慎性格便更加使人看不惯了。他对县里的种种娱乐,如打猎、赌博、跳舞和议论政治等方面,都跟任何别的青年人一样精通;可是他跟大家有不同之处,那就是这些愉快的活动对于他来说,都不是人生的目的。他仅仅对书本和音乐感兴趣,而且很爱写诗。 啊,为什么他要长得这么漂亮,可又这么客气而不好亲近,而且一谈起欧洲,书本、音乐、诗歌以及那些她根本不感兴趣的东西来,他就那么兴奋得令人生厌----可是又那么令人爱慕呢?一个晚上又一个晚上,当思嘉同他坐在前门半明半暗的走廊上闲谈过以后,每次上床睡觉时,总要翻来覆去好几个钟头,最后只得自我安慰地设想下次他再来看她时一定会向她求婚,这才慢慢地睡着。可是,下次来了又走了,结果还是一场空----只是那股令她着迷的狂热劲却升得更高更热了。 她爱他,她需要他,但是她不了解他。她是那么直率、简单,就像吃过塔拉上空的风和从塔拉身边流过的河流一样,而且即使活到老她也不可能理解一件错综复杂的事。如今,她生气第一次碰上了一个性格复杂的人。 因为艾希礼天生属于那种类型,一有闲暇不是用来做事,而是用来思想,用来编织色彩斑斓而毫无现实内容的幻梦。他生活在一个比佐治亚美好得多的内心世界里留连忘返。他对人冷眼旁观,既不喜欢也不厌恶。他对生活漠然视之,无所动心,也无所忧虑。他对宇謅e 以及他在其中的地位,无论适合与否都坦然接受,有时耸耸肩,回到他的音乐、书本和那个更好的世界里去。 思嘉弄不明白,既然他的心对她的心是那样陌生,那么为什么他竟会迷住她呢?就是他的这个秘密像一扇既没有锁也没有钥匙的门引起了她的好奇心。他身上那些她所无法理解的东西只有使她更加爱他,他那种克制的求爱态度只能鼓励她下更大的决心去把他占为己有。她从未怀疑他有一天会向她求婚,因为她实太年轻太娇惯了,从来不懂得失内是怎么回事。现在,好比晴天霹雳,这个可怕的消息突然降临。这不可能是真的呀!艾希礼要娶媚兰了! 为什么,就在上周一个傍晚他们骑马从费尔黑尔回家时,他还对她说过:“思嘉,我有件十分重要的事要告诉你,但是不知怎么说好。"她那时假装正经地低下头来,可高兴得心怦怦直跳,觉得那个愉快的时刻来了。接着他又说:“可现在不行啊!没有时间了。咱们快到家了,唔,思嘉,你看我多么胆怯呀!"他随即用靴刺在马肋上踢了几下,赶快送思嘉越过山冈回塔拉来了。 思嘉坐在树桩上,回想着那几句曾叫她十分高兴的话,可这时它们突然有另一种意思,一种可怕的意思。也许他找算告诉她的就是他要订婚的消息呢! 啊,只要爸爸回来就好了!这个疑团她实在再也忍受不了啦。她又一次焦急地沿着大路向前望去,又一次大失所望。 这时太阳已经沉到地平线以下,大地边沿那片红霞已褪成了淡粉郄的暮霭。天空渐渐由浅蓝变为知更鸟蛋般淡淡的青绿,田园薄暮中那超尘绝俗的宁静也悄悄在她周围降落。朦胧夜色把村庄笼罩起来了。那些红土垅沟和那条仿佛刚被节开的红色大路,也失掉了神奇的血色而变成平凡的褐色土地了。大路对观的牧场上,牛、马和骡子静静地站在那里,把头颈从篱栏上伸出去,等待着被赶回棚里去享受晚餐。它们不喜欢那些灌木丛的黑影把牧地小溪遮蔽,同时抽动双耳望着思嘉,仿佛很欣赏人类的陪伴似的。 河边湿地上那些在阳光下郁郁葱葱的高大松树,在奇异的朦胧暮色中,如今已变得黑糊糊的,与暗淡的天色两相映衬,好像一排黑色巨人站在那里,把脚下缓缓流过的黄泥河水给遮住了。河对面的山冈上,威尔克斯家的白色烟囱在周围的茂密的橡树林中渐渐隐去,只有远处点点的晚餐灯火还能照见那所房子依稀犹在。暖和且柔润的春天气息,带着新翻的泥土和蓬勃生长的草木的潮温香味温馨地包围着她。 对于思嘉来说,落日、春天和新生的草木花卉,都没有什么奇异之处。她接受它们的美都毫不在意。犹如呼吸空和饮用泉水一样,因为除了女人的相貌、马、丝绸衣服和诸如此类的具体东西以外,她从来也不曾有意识地在任何事物身上看到过美。不过,塔拉农场照料得很好的田地上空这一静穆的暮景却给她那纷乱的心情带来了一定程度的安宁。她是如此热爱这片土地,以致好像并没发觉自己在爱它,就像爱她母亲在灯光下祈祷时的面容一般。 蜿蜒的大路上仍然没有杰拉尔德的影子。如果她还要等候很久,嬷嬷就一定会来寻找她,并把她赶回家去。可是就在她眯着眼睛向那愈来愈黑暗的大路前头细看时,她听到了草地脚下得得的马蹄声,同时看见牛马正慌张地散开。杰拉尔德·奥哈拉向家飞奔而来。 他骑着那匹腰壮腿长的猎马驰上山冈,远远看去就像个孩子骑在一匹过于高大的马上。长长的头发在他脑后飞扬着,他举着鞭子,吆喝着加速前进。 尽管思嘉心中充满了焦急不安的情绪,但她仍然怀着无比的自豪感观望父亲,因为杰拉尔德是个真正出色的猎手。 “我不明白他为什么一旦喝了点酒便要跳篱笆,"思嘉心想。"而且去年他就是在这里把膝头摔坏的呀。你以为他会记住这教训吧,尤其是他还对母亲发过誓,答应再不跳了。"思嘉不怕父亲,并且觉得他比他的姐妹们更像是一个同辈,因为跳篱笆和向他妻子保密这件事使他感到一种孩子气的骄傲和略带内疚的愉悦,而这是可以和思嘉干了坏事瞒过嬷嬷时的高兴心情相比的。现在她从树桩上站起身来看他。 那匹大马跑到篱笆边,弯着前腿纵身一跃,便像只鸟儿般毫不费力地飞了过去,它的骑手也高兴地叫喊着,将鞭子在空中抽得噼啪响,长长的白发在脑后飞扬。杰拉尔德并没有看见在树木黑影中的女儿,他在大路上勒住缰绳,赞赏地轻拍着马的颈项。 “在咱们县里没有谁比得上你,就是州里也没有,"他得意洋洋地对自己的马说。他那爱尔兰米思地方的口音依然很重,尽管到美国了39年了。接着他赶快理了理头发,把揉皱的衬衫和扭到耳背后的领结也整理好。思嘉知道这些修整工夫是为了让自己像个讲究的上等人模样去见母亲,假装是拜访邻居以后安安稳稳骑马回来的。她知道自己的机会到了,她可以开始同他谈话而不必担心泄露真实的用意了。 她这时大声笑起来。不出所料,杰拉尔德听见笑声大吃一惊,但随即便认出了她,红润的脸上堆满了边讨好边挑战的神情。他艰难地跳下马来,因为双膝已经麻木了;然后把缰绳搭在胳臂上、蹒跚地向她走来。 “小姐,好啊,"他说着,拧了一下她的面颊,"那么,你是在偷看我了,而且像你的苏伦妹妹上星期干过的那样,准备到你母亲面前去告我的状了吧?"他那沙破低沉的声音里含有怒意,同时也带有讨好的意味,这时思嘉便挑剔而又嗲声嗲气地伸出手来将他领结拉正了。他扑面而来的的呼吸让她嗅到了一股强烈的混和薄荷香味的波旁威士忌酒味。他身上还散发着咀嚼烟草和擦过油的皮革以及马汗的气味----这是一股各种味道的混杂,她经常把它同父亲联系起来,以致在别人身上闻到时也本能地喜欢。 “爸,不会的,我不是苏伦那种搬弄是非的人,"她请他放心,一面略略向后退了一下,带着嬷嬷的神气端详他的服饰。 杰拉尔德身高只有五英尺多,是个矮个儿,但腰身很壮,脖子很粗,坐着时那模样叫陌生人看了还以为他是个比较高大的人。他那十分笨重的躯干由经常裹在头等皮靴里的短粗的双腿支撑着,而且经常大大分开站着,像个摇摇摆摆的孩子。凡是自己以为了不起的矮人,那模样大都是有点可笑的;可是一只矮脚的公鸡在场地上却备受尊敬,杰拉尔德也就是这样。谁也没有胆量把杰拉尔德当作可笑的矮个儿看待。 他60岁了,一头波浪式的鬈发已经白如银丝,但是他那精明的脸上还没有一丝皱纹,两只蓝眼睛也焕发着青年人无忧无虑的神采,这说明他从来不为什么抽象的问题伤脑筋,只想些简单实际的事,如打扑克时要抓几张牌,等等。他那张纯粹爱尔兰型的脸,同他已离别多年的故乡的那些脸一模一样,是圆圆的、深色的、短鼻子,宽嘴巴,满脸好战的神情。 虽然杰拉尔德·奥哈拉外表粗暴,但心地却十分善良。他不忍心看到奴隶们受惩罚时的可怜相,即使是应该的也罢;也不喜欢听到猫叫或小孩蹄哭。不过他很害怕别人发现他的这个弱点。他还不知道人家遇到他不过五分钟就明白他是好心肠的人了。可是如果他觉察到这一点,他的虚荣心就要大受伤害,因为他喜欢设想,只要自己大喊大叫地发号施令,谁都会战战兢兢地服从呢。他从来不曾想到过,在这个农场里人人都服从的只有一个声音,那就是太太爱伦的柔和的声音。 他永远也不会知道这个秘密,因为自爱伦以下直到最粗笨的大田劳工,都在暗中串通一起,让他始终相信自己的话便是圣旨。 思嘉比谁都更不在乎他的嬷嬷和吼叫。她是他的头生孩子,而且杰拉尔德也清楚,在三个儿子相继向进了家庭墓地之后,他不会再有儿子了,因此他已逐渐养成习惯,以男人对男人的态度来对待她,而这是她最乐意接受的。她比几个妹妹更像父亲,因为卡琳生来体格纤弱,多愁善感,而苏伦又自命不凡,总觉得自己文雅,有贵妇人派头。 另个,还有一个相互制约的协议把思嘉和父亲彼此联系在一起。要是杰拉尔德看见女儿爬篱笆而不愿走道到大门口去,他便当面责备她,但事后并不向爱伦或嬷嬷提出。而思嘉要是发现他在向太太郑重保证之后还照样骑着马跳篱笆,或者从县里人的闲谈中听说他打扑克时输了多少钱,她也不在吃晚饭时像苏伦那样直统统地说起这件事。思嘉和她父亲认真地彼此交代过:谁要是把这种搬到母亲耳边,那只会使她伤心,而无论如何他们也是犯不着这样做的。 如今在擦黑的微光中思嘉望着父亲,也不知为什么她觉得一到他面前心里就舒服了。他身上有一种生气勃勃的粗俗味儿吸引着她。她作为一个最没有分析头脑的人,并不明白这是由于她自己身上也或多或少有着同样禀性的缘故,尽管爱伦和嬷嬷花了16年的心血想它抹掉,也终归徒然。 “好了,现在你完全可以出台了,"她说,"我想除非你自己吹牛,谁也不会怀疑你玩过这种花招的。不过我觉得,你去年已经摔坏了膝盖,现在又跳这同一道篱笆----”“唔,如果我还得靠自己的女儿来告诉我什么地方该跳或不该跳,那可太糟糕了,"他叫嚷着,又在她脸颊上拧了一把。 “颈脖了是我自己的,就是这样。另外,姑娘,你光着肩膀在这儿干什么?”她看到父亲在玩弄他惯用的手法来回避眼前一次不愉快的谈话,便轻轻挽住他的胳臂,一边说:“我在等你呢!没想到你会这么晚才回来。我还以为你把迪尔茜买下来了。”“买是买下来了,可价钱真要了我的命。买了她和她的小女儿百里茜。约翰·威尔克斯几乎想把她们送掉,可我决不让人家说杰拉尔德·奥哈拉在买卖中凭友情占了便宜。我叫他把两人共卖了三千。” “爸爸,我的天,三千哪!再说,你也用不着买百里茜呀!”“难道该让我自己的女儿公然来评判我?"杰拉尔德用幽默的口吻喊道:“百里茜是个蛮可爱的小女儿,所以----”“我知道。她是个又鬼又笨的小家伙,"思嘉不顾父亲的吼叫,只平静地接下去说。"而且,你买下她的主要理由是,迪尔茜央求你买她。"杰拉尔德似乎倒了威风,显得很尴尬,就像他平常做好事时给抓住了那样,这时思嘉便乐呵呵地笑话其他那伪装的坦率来了。 “不过,就算我这样做了又怎么样?只买来迪尔茜,要是她整天惦记孩子,又有什么用呢?好了,从此我再也不让这里的黑小子跟别处的女人结婚了。那太费钱。来吧,淘气包,咱们进屋去吃晚饭。"周围的黑影越来越浓,最后一丝绿意也从天空中消失了,春天的温馨已被微微的寒意所取代。可是思嘉还在踌躇,不知怎样才能把话题转到艾希礼身上而又不让杰拉尔德怀疑她的用意。这是困难的,因为从思嘉身上找不出一根随机应变的筋来;同时杰拉尔德也与她十分相似,没有哪一次不识奇她的诡计,犹如猜透了他的一样。何况他这样做时是很少拐弯抹角的。 “'十二橡树'村那边的人都怎样了?” “大体和往常一样。凯德·卡尔弗特也在那里。我办完迪尔茜的事以后,大家在走廊上喝了几盅棕榈酒。凯德刚刚从亚特兰大来,他们正兴致勃勃,在那里谈论战争,以及----" 思嘉叹了一口气。只要杰拉尔德一谈起战争和脱离联邦这个话题,他不扯上几个小时是不会停下的。她连忙拿另一个话题来岔开。 “他们有没有谈起?明天的全牛野宴?” “我记得是谈起过的。那位小姐----她叫什么名字来着?----就是去年到这里来过的那个小妮子,你知道,艾希礼的表妹----啊,对了,媚兰·汉密尔顿小姐,就叫这个名字---- 她和她哥哥查尔斯已经从亚特兰大来了,并且----”“唔,她果真来了?”“真是个可爱的文静人儿,她来了,总是不声不响,女人家就该这样嘛。走吧,女儿,别磨蹭了,你妈会到处找咱们的。"思嘉一听到这消息心就沉了。她曾经不顾事实地一味希望会有什么事情把媚兰·汉密尔顿留在亚特兰大,因为她就是那里的人呀;而且听到连父亲也完全跟她的看法相反,满口赞赏媚兰那文静的禀性,这就促使她不得不摊开来谈了。 “艾希礼也在那里吗?” “他在那里。"杰拉尔德松开女儿的胳膊,转过身来,用犀利的眼光凝视着她的脸。"如果你就是为了这个才出来等我的,那你为什么不直截了当说,却要兜这么大个圈子呢?"思嘉不知说什么好,只觉得心中一起纷乱,脸都涨得通红了。 “好,说下去。” 她仍是什么也不说,真希望在这种局面下能使劲摇晃自己的父亲叫他闭嘴算了。 “他在,并且像他的几个妹妹那样十分亲切地问候了你,还说希望不会有什么事拖住你不去参加明天的大野宴呢。我当然向他们保证绝不会的,"他机灵地说。”现在你说,女儿,关于你和艾希礼,这到底是怎么回事呀?”“没什么,"她简地答道,一面拉着他的胳臂。"爸,我们进去吧。”“现在你倒是要进去了,"他说。”可是我还是要站在这里,直到我明白你是怎么回事。唔,我想起来了,你最近显得有点奇怪,难道他跟你胡闹来着?他向你求婚了吗?”“没有,"她简单地回答。 “他是不会的,"杰拉尔德说。 她心中顿时火气,可是杰拉尔德摆了摆手,叫她平静些。 “姑娘!别说了,今天下午我从约翰·威尔克斯那里听说,艾希礼千真万确要跟媚兰小姐结婚。明天晚上就要宣布。"思嘉的手从他的胳臂上滑下来。果然是真的呀! 她的心头一阵剧痛,仿佛一只野兽用尖牙在咬着她。就在这当儿,她父亲的眼睛死死盯住她,由于面对一个他不知该怎样回答的问题而觉得有点可怜,又颇为烦恼。他爱思嘉,可是现在她竟把她那些孩子般的问题向他提出来,强求他解决,这就使他很不舒服。爱伦懂得怎样回答这些问题。思嘉本来应当到她那里去诉苦的。 “你这不是在出自己的洋相----出咱们大家的洋相吗?”他厉声说,声音高得像昨日发嬷嬷时一样了。"你是在追求一个不爱你的男人了?可这县里有那么多哥儿公子,你是谁都可以挑选的呀!"愤怒和受伤的自尊感反而把思嘉心中的痛苦驱走了一部分。 “我并没有追他。只不过感到吃惊而已。”“你这是在撒谎!"杰拉尔德大声说,接着,他凝视着她的脸,又突然显得十分慈祥地补充道:“我很难过,女儿。但毕竟你还是个孩子,而且别的小伙子还多着呢。”“妈妈嫁给你时才15岁呀,现在我都16了,"思嘉嘟嘟囔囔地说。 “你妈妈可不一样,"杰拉尔德说。"她从来不像你这样胡思乱想。好了,女儿,高兴一点,下星期我带你到查尔斯顿去看尤拉莉姨。看看他们那里怎样闹腾萨姆特要塞的事,包你不到一星期就艾希礼忘了。”“他还把我当孩子看,"思嘉心里想,悲伤和愤怒憋得她说不出话来,"以为只要拿着新玩具在我面前晃两下,我就会把伤痛全忘了呢。”“好,别跟我作对了,"杰拉尔德警告说。"你要是懂点事,早就该同斯图尔特或者布伦特结婚了。考虑考虑吧,女儿,同这对双胞胎中无论哪一个结婚,两家的农场便可以连成一起,吉姆·塔尔顿和我便会给你们盖一幢漂亮房子,就在两家农场连接的地方,那一大片松林里,而且----” “别把我当小孩看待了,好吗?”思嘉嚷道。"我不去查尔斯顿,也不要什么房子,或同双胞胎结婚。我只要----"说到这里,她停顿了,但已经为时过晚。 杰拉尔德的声音出奇地平静,他慢吞吞地说着,仿佛是从一个很少使用的思想匣子里把话一字一句地抽出来似的。 “你唯一要的是艾希礼,可是却得不到他。而且即使他要和你结婚,我也未必就乐意应许,无论我同约翰·威尔克斯有多好的交情。"这时他看到她惊惶的神色,便接着说:“我要让我的女儿幸福,可你同他在一起是不会幸福的。”“啊,我会的,我会的!”“女儿,你不会的。只有同一类型的人两相匹配,才有幸福可言。”思嘉忽然心里起了种恶意,想大声喊出来:“可你不是一直很幸福呀,尽管你和妈并不是同类的人,"不过她把这念头压下去了,生怕他容忍不了这种卤莽行为,给她妈一耳光。 “咱们家的人跟威尔克斯家的人不一样,"他字斟句酌地慢慢说。"威尔克斯家跟咱们所有的邻居----跟我所认识的每家邻居都不一样。他们是些古古怪怪的人,最好是和他们的表姐妹去结婚,让他们一起保持自己的古怪去吧。”“怎么,爸爸,艾希礼可不是----”“姑娘!别急呀,我并没说这个年轻人的坏话嘛,因为我喜欢他。我说的古怪,并不就是疯狂的意思。他的古怪并不像卡尔弗特家的人那样,把所有的一切都押在一骑马身上,也不像塔尔顿家的孩子那样每次都喝得烂醉如泥,而且跟方丹家那些狂热的小畜牲也不一样,他们动不动就行凶杀人。那种古怪是容易理解的,而且,老实说吧,要不是上帝保佑,杰拉尔德·奥哈拉很可能样样俱全呢。我也不是说,你如果做了他的位子,艾希礼会跟别的女人私奔,或者揍你。要是那样,你反而会幸福些,因为你至少懂得那是怎么回事。但他的古怪归于另一种方式,它使你对艾希礼根本无理解可言。我喜欢他,可是对于他所说的那些东西,我几乎全都摸不着头脑。好了,姑娘,老实告诉我,你理解他关于书本、诗歌、音乐、油画以及诸如此类的傻事所说的那些废话吗?”“啊,爸爸,”思嘉不耐烦地说,"如果我跟他结了婚,我会把这一切都改变过来的!”“唔,你会,你现在就会?"杰拉尔德暴躁地说,狠狠地瞪了她一眼。"这说明你对世界上任何一个男人都知道得还很少,更何况对艾希礼呢。你可千万别忘了哪个妻子也不曾把丈夫改变一丁点儿埃至于说改变威尔克斯家的某个人,那简直是笑话,女儿。他们全家都那样,且历来如此。并且大概会永远这样下去了。我告诉你,他们生来就这么古怪。瞧他们今天跑纽约,明天跑波士顿,去听什么歌剧,看什么油画,那个忙乎戏儿!还要从北方佬那儿一大箱一大箱地订购法文和德文书呢!然后他们就坐下来读,坐下来梦想天知道什么玩意儿,这样的大好时光要是像正常人那样用来打猎和玩扑克,该多好呀!”“可是县里没有骑马得比艾希礼更好的呢,"思嘉对这些尽是诬蔑艾希礼的话十分恼火,便开始辩护起来。“也许他父亲不算,此外一个人也没有。至于打扑克,艾希礼不是上星期在琼博罗还赢走了你二百美元吗?”“卡尔佛特家的小子们又在胡扯了,"杰拉尔德不加辩解地说,"要不然你怎会知道这个数目。艾希礼能够跟最出色的骑手骑马,也能跟最出色的牌友玩扑克----我就是最出色的,姑娘!而且我不否认,他喝起酒来能使甚至塔尔顿家的人也醉倒了桌子底下。所有这些他都行,可是他的心不在这上面。 这就是我说他为人古怪的原因。” 思嘉默不作声,她的心在往下沉。对于这最后一点,她想不出辩护的话来了,因为她知道杰拉尔德是对的。艾希礼的心不在所有这些他玩得最好的娱乐上。对于大家所最感兴趣的任何事物,他最多只不过出于礼貌,表示爱好而已。 杰拉尔德明白她这的沉默的意思,便拍拍她的臂膀得意地说:“思嘉!好啦!你承认我这话说对了。你要艾希礼这样一个丈夫干什么呢?他们全都是疯疯癫癫的,所有威尔克斯家的人。"接着,他又用讨好的口气说:“刚才我提到塔尔顿家的小伙子们,那可不是挤对他们呀。他们是些好小子,不过,如果你在设法猎取的是,凯德·卡尔弗特,那么,这对我也完全一样。卡尔费特家的人是好样的,他们都是这样,尽管那老头娶了北方佬。等到我过世的时候----别响呀,亲爱的,听我说嘛!我要把塔拉农场留给你和凯德----”“把凯德用银盘托着送给我,我也不会要,"思嘉气愤地喊道。"我求求你不要硬把他推给我吧!我不要塔拉或别的什么农常农场一钱不值,要是----"她正要说"要是你得不到你所想要的人,"可这时杰拉尔德被她那种傲慢的态度激怒了----她居然那样对待他送给他的礼品,那是除爱伦以外他在世界上最宠爱的东西呢,于是他大吼了一声。 “思嘉,你真敢公然对我说,塔拉----这块土地----一钱不值吗?”思嘉固执地点点头。已经顾不上考虑这是否会惹她父亲大发雷霆。因为她内心太痛苦了。 “土地是世界上唯一最值钱的东西啊!"他一面嚷,一面伸开两只又粗又短的胳臂做了非常气愤的姿势,"因为它是世界上唯一持久的东西,而且你千万别忘了,它是唯一值得你付出劳动,进行战斗----牺牲性命的东西啊!”“啊,爸,"她厌恶地说,"你说这话真像个爱尔兰人哪!”“我难道为这感到羞耻过吗?不。我感到自豪呢。姑娘可别忘了你是半个爱尔兰人,对于每一个上有一滴爱尔兰血液的人来说,他们居住在土地就像他们的母亲一样。此刻我是在为你感到羞耻埃我把世界上----咱们祖国的米思除外----最美好的土地给你,可你怎么样呢?你嗤之以鼻嘛!"杰拉尔德正准备痛痛快快发泄一下心中的怒气。这时他看见思嘉满脸悲伤的神色,便止住了。 “不过,你还年轻。将来你会懂得爱这块土地的。只要你做了爱尔兰人,你是没法摆脱它的。现在你还是个孩子,还只为自己的意中人操心哪。等到你年纪大一些,你就会懂得-- --现在你要下定决心,究竟是挑选凯德还是那对双胞胎,或者伊凡·芒罗家的一个小伙子,无论谁,到时候看我让你们过得舒舒服服的。”“啊,爸!"杰拉尔德这时觉得这番谈话实在厌烦透了,而且一想到这个问题还得由他来解决,便十分恼火。另外,由于思嘉对他所提供的最佳对象和塔拉农场居然无动于衷,还是那么郁郁不乐,也感到委屈得很。他多么希望这些礼物被女儿用鼓誂E,亲吻来接受啊! “好,别撅着嘴生气了。姑娘,无论你嫁给谁,这都没有关系,只要他跟你情投意合,是上等人,又是个有自尊心的南方人就行。女人嘛,结了婚便会产生爱情的。”“啊,爸!你看你这观念有多旧多土啊!”“这才是个好观念啊!那种美国式的做法,到处跑呀找呀,要为爱情结婚呀,像些佣人似的,像北方佬似的,有什么意思呢。最好的婚姻是靠父母给女儿选择对象。不然,像你这样的傻丫头,怎能分清楚好人和坏蛋呢。好吧,你看看威尔克斯家。他们凭什么世世代代保持了自己的尊严和兴旺呢?那不就凭的是跟自己的同类人结婚,跟他们家庭所希望的那些表亲结婚埃”“啊!"思嘉叫起来,由于杰拉尔德的话把事实的不可避免性说到家了,她心中产生了新的痛苦。杰拉尔德看看她低下的头,很不自在地把两只脚反复挪动着。 “你不是在哭吧?"他问她,笨拙地摸摸她的下巴,想叫她仰起脸来,这时他自己的脸由于怜悯而露出深深的皱纹来了。 “没有!"她猛寺把头扭开,激怒地大叫了。 “你是在撒谎,但我很喜欢这样。我巴不得你为人骄傲一些,姑娘。但愿在明天的大野宴上也看到你的骄傲。我不要全县的人都谈论你和笑话你,说你成天痴心想着一个男人,而那个人却根本无意于你,只维持一般的友谊罢了。”“他对我是有意的呀,"思嘉想,心里十分难过。"啊,情意深着呢!我知道他真的是这样。我敢断定,只要再有一点点时间,我相信便能叫他亲自说出来----啊,要不是威尔克斯家的人总觉得他们只能同表亲结婚,那就好了!"杰拉尔德把她的臂膀挽起来。 “咱们要进去吃晚饭了,这件事就不声张,只咱们知道行了。我不会拿它去打扰你妈妈 ----你也不着跟他说。擤擤鼻涕吧,女儿。"思嘉用她的奇手绢擤了擤鼻涕,然后他们彼此挽着胳臂走上黑暗的车道,那骑马在后面缓缓地跟着。走近屋子时,思嘉正要开口说什么,忽然看见走廊暗影中的母亲。她戴着帽子、披肩和手套,嬷嬷跟在后面,脸色像满天乌云阴沉,手里拿着一个黑皮袋,那是爱伦出去给农奴们看病时经常带着装药品和绷带用的。嬷嬷那片又宽又厚的嘴唇向下耷拉着,她生起气来会把下嘴唇拉得有平时两倍那么大。这张嘴现在正撅着,所以思嘉明白嬷嬷正在为什么不称心的事生气呢。 “奥哈拉先生,"爱伦一见父女俩在车道上走来便叫了一声----爱伦是地道的老一辈人,她尽管结结婚17年了,生育了六个孩子,可仍然讲究礼节----她说:“奥哈拉先生,斯莱特里那边有人病了。埃米的新生婴儿快要死了,可是还得他施洗礼。我和嬷嬷去看看还有没有什么办法。"她的声音带有明显的询问口气,仿佛在征求杰拉尔德的同意,这无非是一种礼节上的表示,但从杰拉尔德看来却是非常珍贵的。 “真的天知道!"杰拉尔德一听便嚷嚷开了,"为什么这些下流白人嬷嬷在吃晚饭的时候把你叫走呢?而且我正要告诉你亚特兰大那边人们在怎样谈论战争呀!去吧,奥拉太太。我知道,只要外边出了点什么事,你不去帮忙是整夜也睡不好觉的。”“她总是一点也不休息,深更半夜为黑人和穷白人下流坯子看病,好像他们就照顾不了自己。"嬷嬷自言自语咕囔着下了台阶,向等在道旁的马车走去。 “你就替我照管晚饭吧,亲爱的,"爱伦说,一面用戴手套的手轻轻摸了摸思嘉的脸颊。 不管思嘉怎样强忍着眼中的泪水,她一接触母亲的爱抚,从她绸衣上隐隐闻到那个柠檬色草编香囊中的芳馨,便被那永不失效的魅力感动得震颤起来。对于思嘉来说,爱伦·奥哈拉周围有一种令人吃惊的东西,房子里有一种不可思议的东西同她在一起,使她敬畏、着迷,也使她平静。 杰拉尔德扶他的太太上了马车,吩咐车夫一路小心。车夫托比驾驭杰拉尔德的马已经20年了,他撅着嘴对这种吩咐表示抗议----还用得着你来提醒我这个老把式哪!他赶着车动身子,嬷嬷坐在他身旁,刚好构成一副非洲人撅嘴使气的绝妙图画。 “要是我不给斯莱特里那些下流坯帮那么大的忙----换了别人本来是要报酬的。”杰拉尔德气愤地说,"他们就会愿意把沼泽边上那几英亩赖地卖给我,县里也就会把他们摆脱了。"随后,他面露喜色,想起一个有益的玩笑来:“女儿,来吧,咱们去告诉波克,说我没有买下迪尔茜,而是把他卖给约翰·威尔克斯了。"他把缰绳扔给站在旁边的一个黑小子,然后大步走上台阶,他已经忘记了思嘉的伤心事,一心想去捉弄他的管家。思嘉跟在他后面,慢腾腾地爬上台阶,两只脚沉重得像铅一般。 她想,无论如何,要是她自己和艾希礼结为夫妻,至少不会比她父亲这一对显得更不相称的。如往常那样,她觉得奇怪,怎么这位大喊大叫,没心计的父亲会设法娶上了像她母亲那样的一个女人呢?因为从出身、教养和性格来说,世界上再没有比他们彼此距离更远的两个人了。 |